home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1996-05-26 | 475.8 KB | 8,988 lines |
- APREAD.TXT
-
-
- ASTRAL PROJECTION/OOBE CLASS
- CONDUCTED ON THE COMPUSERVE NEWAGE FORUM
-
-
- BY DONALD J. DEGRACIA
- COPYRIGHT 1994
-
-
- ************************************************************************
-
- README FILE AND INSTRUCTIONS
-
- ************************************************************************
-
-
- ------------
- INTRODUCTION
- ------------
-
- You are now reading the README file which accompanys 15
- other files (AP_01.txt - AP_15.txt). These files contain relatively
- comprehensive lessons on how to achieve astral projections/OOBEs.
- These files were written as notes for an on-line class I gave in
- the New Age forum on CompuServe during May and June of 1994.
- If you are reading this file, then you did NOT obtain this
- package from CompuServe's New Age forum. What you are reading is the
- version I have released everywhere else in cyberspace. The only
- difference between this package and the original class notes is this
- README file. The text in AP_01.TXT through AP_15.TXT is unchanged.
- I am releasing these notes to the Public Domain essentially
- as a free book on how to astral project. Please note however that
- all of the material is copyrighted.
- I hope you will find this material useful and enjoyable. I
- have stressed a practical approach to inducing astral projections/OOBEs
- while at the same time trying to provide a reasonable balance
- between differing views of this phenomena.
-
-
- ------------
- INSTRUCTIONS
- ------------
-
- If you are reading this file, then you are on a nonPC platfom. This file, DO_
- OBE.TXT
- contains the entire contents of the archive DO_OBE.ZIP. DO_OBE.TXT is an all
- ASCII version provided for nonPC platforms that can read ASCII files.
-
- ------------
- DISTRIBUTION
- ------------
-
- Please feel free to upload DO-OBE.TXT to your favorite BBS
- or FTP sites. Thanks.
-
-
- ---------------------
- CONTACTING THE AUTHOR
- ---------------------
-
- I can be reached at the following e-mail addresses:
-
- CompuServe: 72662,1335 (72662.1335@compuserve.com) [PREFERED]
- CompuServe: 71331,3516 (71331.3516@compuserve.com) [Rarely used]
- Internet: ddegrac@cms.cc.wayne.edu [Very rarely used]
-
- If you send me e-mail and do not hear from me within a few
- days, try one of the alternative addresses listed here.
- Please feel free to write me with questions, comments,
- criticisms or anything else. I will try my best to give
- a quick reply back to any mail I receive.
-
-
-
- ----------------
- ABOUT THE AUTHOR
- ----------------
-
- Since 1987, Donald DeGracia has had numerous out-of-body experiences.
- He is an avid student of occultism, science, history, social science,
- and philosophy. His whole orientation towards the OOBE involves
- a point of view that seeks to synthesize scientific and occult
- knowledge. Donald has a Bachelors of Science degree in chemistry,
- and is currently obtaining a Ph.D. in physiology. He presently
- works as a biochemical researcher in the field of cerebral
- ischemia and reperfusion, and has published a number of papers
- in this area. Donald and his lovely wife Kathy are currently
- situated in Detroit, MI.
-
-
- --------------
- Special Thanks
- --------------
-
- Special thanks goes to my wonderful wife Kathy, who had the
- patience and excellent grammar skills to proof and edit these notes.
- Thanks also goes out to Jeff Wiley, a fellow traveler/dreamer for
- his helpful suggestions, and to Rilla Muldon for giving me the impetus
- to write these notes.
-
-
- ------------------------------
- DETAILED LIST OF FILE CONTENTS
- ------------------------------
-
- 1. AP_01.TXT
- [FILE 1] WHAT IS ASTRAL PROJECTION? PART 1
-
- Introduction
- 1. What Is Astral Projection?
- 2. Different views of astral projections.
- A. Occult views
-
- 2. AP_02.TXT
- [FILE 2] WHAT IS ASTRAL PROJECTION? PART 2
-
- A. Occult Views (continued from file 1)
- i. Occult Anatomy
- B. Scientific Views
- i. Parapsychology - OOBEs
- ii. Psychology - Lucid Dreaming
-
- 3. AP_03.TXT
- [FILE 3] WHAT IS ASTRAL PROJECTION? PART 3
-
- 3. Tying It All Together
- 4. Radio Station theory of consciousness - The Subplanes
- 5. Mystical view of consciousness
-
- 4. AP_04.TXT
- [FILE 4] HOW TO ASTRAL PROJECT - PART 1
-
- 1. USING DREAMS AS A SPRINGBOARD FOR ASTRAL PROJECTING
-
- 5. AP_05.TXT
- [FILE 5] HOW TO ASTRAL PROJECT - PART 2
-
- 2. TRANCE METHODS
- A. PUTTING YOURSELF INTO A TRANCE
- i. Hypnogogic Imagery
- ii. Kinesthetic Sensation
-
- 6. AP_06.TXT
- [FILE 6] HOW TO ASTRAL PROJECT - PART 3
-
- 3. Don's Actual Experiences On The Border Between
- Waking And Projecting
- 4. Other Techniques For Getting Out Of Body
- A. Visualization Methods
- B. Drugs, Tapes And Other Devices
-
- 7. AP_07.TXT
- [FILE 7]1. IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 1
-
-
- 1. Describing OOBEs with words
- 2. The State Of Your Mind In The OOBE State
- 3. The OOBE world: objective or subjective?
- 4. The Dweller at the Threshold
-
- 8. AP_08.TXT
- [FILE 8] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 2
-
- 5. Things You Can Do There That You Can't Do Here
- A. Moving, Flying and the "Wind"
- B. Moving through walls
- C. Exercising psychic powers
-
- 9. AP_09.TXT
- [FILE 9] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 3
-
- C. Exercising psychic powers (continued from FILE 8)
- 6. Places you can go: Sights and vistas
- A. Life in the void
- B. Life on the planes
- i. The Lower Realms
- ii. The Middle Realms
-
- 10. AP_10.TXT
- [FILE 10] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 4
-
- ii. The Middle Realms (continued from FILE 9)
- iii. The Higher Realms
- iv. The Surreal Regions
-
- 11. AP_11.TXT
- [FILE 11] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 5
-
- 7. Things And People You Meet
- A. Nonhuman Denizens Of The Planes
-
- 12. AP_12.TXT
- [FILE 12] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 6
-
- B. Meeting People: Dead Verses Dreamers
- i. The Character of People In OOBEs
-
- 13. AP_13.TXT
- [FILE 13] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 7
-
- B. Meeting People (continued from FILE 12)
-
- 14. AP_14.TXT
- [FILE 14] IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 8
-
- 8. Getting into trouble
- 9. Waking up - Returning Back To The Physical Realm
- 10. Astrology and OOBEs
- 11. Wrapping it all up
- A. Review.
- B. OOBEs: Subjective Or Objective?
- C. Maya and Buddhi
-
- 15. AP_15.TXT
- [FILE 15] ANNOTATED BIBLIOGRAPHY-Recommended Reading List
-
-
-
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF README FILE.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- WHAT IS ASTRAL PROJECTION? PART 1
-
-
-
- Introduction:
-
- Before saying anything else I would like to thank and congratulate
- everyone who is taking this class. Whether you know it or not, by taking
- an interest in achieving the types of experience we will discuss here,
- you are opening yourself up to a greatly expanded view of yourself and
- the life and world around you. Hopefully, by the end of this class you
- will have a deep appreciation of what I mean in saying this. I wish
- everyone the best of luck!
-
-
-
- 1. What Is Astral Projection? Part 1
-
- Just what exactly is astral projection? Well, we can get very
- academic and erudite about this, and we will do this to some extent below.
- But for now, for starters, what we want to do is lay out a definition
- of astral projection that is *practical*. There are numerous ways
- we can view and define astral projection, but the most central point is that
- it is an *experience*, a special type of experience. No matter how you
- look at it, astral projection is an *altered state of consciousness*.
- So, what is an altered state of consciousness? Well, it is a state
- of consciousness that is NOT our normal waking state of consciousness.
- There is one altered state with which we are all very, very familiar and
- that is the dreams we experience when we sleep at night. Dreaming itself
- is an altered state of consciousness. And, as we will see as we progress,
- dreaming and astral projection are very closely related states of
- consciousness.
- Now, astral projection goes under a variety of names. Some other
- names for the astral projection experience are the following: 1. lucid
- dreaming, and 2. out-of-body experiences (OOBEs). Some people will debate
- that astral projections, lucid dreams and OOBEs are different things. We
- will discuss these distinctions below. However, I want to stress that such
- distinctions amount to splitting hairs, and are not that important. For
- our purposes, I will use these 3 terms interchangeably. That is, whether I
- say "astral projection", "lucid dream" or "OOBE", I am refering to the same
- thing. Actually, I will probably use OOBE a lot since it is the easist
- to type. What is really important is not what we call the experience, but
- LEARNING FOR YOURSELF HOW TO ACHIEVE THIS EXPERIENCE. And everything
- I will stress here is geared to this all important end.
- So, for the sake of gearing all this to helping you actually
- have an OOBE, there are two main things we will focus on: theory and
- practice. You need to understand both. Either alone is useless. Theory
- by itself is just empty talk. Practice without theory just leads to
- confusion, and in the case of OOBEs, it can lead to real psychological
- danger as well. By themselves, OOBEs are NOT dangerous. However, if
- you don't know what you are doing, they can be. So, you need the theory
- to understand what is going on, and you need the practice to put the theory
- into action. So, in this course, we will cover both: theory and practice.
- However, as you will see, I personally lean much more towards the practical,
- and this is what I will stress throughout. We will pay lip service to
- theory, but again, theory is useless without putting action behind the
- ideas.
- Finally, I want to say this: I will attempt in these lessons to make
- the information I provide as self-contained as I can. That is, I want
- to really try to provide a comprehensive overview of OOBEs and really
- give you your money's worth. However, there is just a tremendous amount
- of information related to OOBEs. For example, some related topics are the
- following: human psychology, dreams, occultism, religion, mysticism and
- science. I hope, that after reading these notes, you will get some idea
- that all of these topics are related to OOBEs. I am providing an annotated
- bibliography of books that I feel provide useful study. And I really
- encourage everyone to look through this bibliography and to actually
- read some of the books listed there. The more you know about OOBEs, the
- better. That's all there is to it!
-
-
- 2. Different views of astral projections.
-
- So, having said my introductory remarks, let's look at the various ways
- people define astral projections/OOBEs/lucid dreams. Basically, we can
- divide up the various viewpoints as follows: 1. occult views, and
- 2. scientific views. Within each of these broad views are a number of sub-
- viewpoints, and we will mention each of these at least briefly.
-
- A. Occult views
-
- Within the camp of occult views, we can divide this into Western
- and Eastern occult views. However, what is nice here is that Eastern
- and Western occultism are very similar. One may find differences in
- small details, but the general viewpoints are very similar.
- Now, the term "astral projection" comes from occult views
- of this expereince. This term implies that what the experience is is
- the projection of one's self to the astral *plane*. Occultists teach
- that the universe is a series of planes of matter and that the physical
- world we perceive with our senses is but one of a series of, usually seven,
- planes. This is one assumption of the occult view of the world. Here
- is a list of the important ideas in the occult world-view that will allow
- us to understand what the term "astral projection" means:
-
- 1. Occultists teach that our consciousness transcends our physical body.
-
- 2. Occultists teach that each of us is an immortal soul who has
- temporarily incarnated into the physical world.
-
- 3. Occultists teach that the universe is a series of planes. Each
- plane is a world unto itself.
-
- 4. Occultists teach that each of us has facilities for interacting with
- at least 4 of these planes. These facilities are called "vehicles" or
- "bodies" and we have four of them: a physical body for interacting with
- the physical world (or plane), an astral body for interacting with the
- astral world/plane, a mental body for interacting with the mental
- world/plane and a buddhic body for interacting with the buddhic
- world/plane.
-
-
- Before we go into these ideas in more detail, let me say this. To
- an occultist, the act of astral projecting entails transferring ones
- consciousness to the astral body and exploring the astral plane. And
- also let me say that, as far as theory goes, this is the theory I
- ascribe to. Generally speaking, the occult ideas are the most practical
- ideas you can use to understand what is happening to you when you have
- an OOBE. So, let's go into these ideas a little deeper and spell out
- their implications. For further reading on these topics, see the books
- by Charles Leadbeater and Annie Besant in the bibliography.
-
- First thing that needs to be said: the occult ideas fly in the
- face of everything we've been taught about what it is to be a human
- being here in America in the late 20th century. According to our *common*
- social beliefs, we are either atheists/materialists who do not think
- there is any such thing as a "soul", or we were raised with simple-minded
- ideas about God, Heaven and Hell. Occult ideas challenge both of these
- viewpoints, and the beauty of learning to astral project is that you
- put yourself in a position to determine who is right and wrong on these
- issues. So, if the following ideas are unfamiliar to you, please
- be prepared to have your concepts about reality greatly expanded!
-
- The basis of occult teachings is this: the senses of our physical body; our
- ears, eyes, taste, feeling, senses of heat and balance, smell, these
- senses define for us the physical world. That is to say, our physical
- senses, *by definition*, only allow us to perceive the physical world.
- However, according to occult teachings, THERE ARE ENERGIES THAT EXIST
- THAT WE CANNOT PERCEIVE WITH OUR PHYSICAL SENSES. In a nutshell, this
- idea underlies all of occultism, including whatever particular school
- of thought you like best (i.e. Theosophy, Hermitics, Paganism, Alchemy,
- etc., etc.).
-
- Now, the idea that energies exist that we cannot perceive is no big news.
- Everyone knows about x-rays, about radioactivity, about ultra-violet
- radiation. These energies we can detect with machines, but not with our
- physical senses. However, where the occultist "goes over the edge",
- so to speak, is with the claim that WE HUMANS CAN PERCEIVE THESE ENERGIES
- WITHOUT THE AID OF MACHINES. However, to understand this we need to
- go into the ideas of the vehicles/bodies, ideas that fall under the
- heading of "occult anatomy".
-
- Occult anatomy is the idea stated above, that we humans have more bodies
- than we can directly perceive: that we have, not only a physical body, but
- an astral body, a mental body and a buddhic body, as well. Each of these
- bodies exists on its respective plane. So, before we can go off about the
- bodies, we must discuss the idea of the planes.
-
- The occult planes of nature can be thought of as occult physics. For
- the idea of the planes posits that there are whole worlds of energies
- beyond the ken of our perception, energies of which modern scientists are
- completely ignorant.
-
- Again, we are flying in the face of common knowledge. Sure, scientists
- grant that there are x-rays, radioactivity, ultraviolet radiation, and
- even infinitely minute worlds of subatomic particles and neutrinos. But
- to say that there are whole worlds, full of life and activity and strange
- creatures, that exist beyond the ken of our physical senses is a complete
- absurdity to the modern scientist. However, this is exactly what the
- planes are. Each plane is a world, a giant world full of all kinds of
- strange and exotic places and creatures with sights and sounds that
- dwarf anything we know of here in the physical world.
-
- I should point out too that there are other names you might hear
- of that refer to the planes. Such terms are: "dimensions", "aethyrs",
- "lokas". "realms". Each of these terms essentially means "plane"
- or "world".
-
- Now, again, and to keep your interest at this point, let me remind you
- that once you learn to astral project for yourself, then you can determine
- whether or not this is all so much fantasy and bs. Keeping this
- in mind, let's define these planes a little better.
-
- In the most commonly accepted schemes of the planes, it is taught that
- there are seven planes and that we humans can access the 4 lowest planes.
- The common names of the seven planes are:
-
- 1. Physical Plane (which includes the Etheric Plane)
- 2. Astral Plane
- 3. Mental Plane
- 4. Buddhic Plane
- 5. Atmic Plane
- 6. Anupadaka Plane
- 7. Adi Plane
-
- Now, let's define each of these planes.
-
- 1. Physical Plane. This is the world you are sitting in right now. The
- physical plane is the familiar world of our everyday life. In the occult
- scheme, there are aspects of the physical worl that are invisible to our
- senses, and these invisible aspects of the physical plane are called
- the "etheric plane". Above I mentioned x-rays, radioactivity, ultra-
- violet radiation and subatomic particles. In the occult world-view, these
- energies are "etheric" energies, and again, this simply means these
- are energies of the physical plane that we cannot perceive with the
- senses of our physical body. As we will discuss below, and is actually
- quite important to the endeavor of astral projecting, occultists
- claim we have a body made of etheric energies and they call this our
- "etheric body". It is very likely that many of you will actually
- have experiences in your etheric body once you start attempting to project.
- Again, this will all be explained in due course.
-
- 2. The Astral Plane. The astral plane is described of as a world of
- emotion and desire. On this plane our emotions and desires are actually
- *living creatures*. Also, according to occultists, the astral plane
- is where people go immediately after they die. "Dead people" (actually,
- "discarnate" people) do not stay forever on the astral plane, it is only
- a temporary stop after death. In this regard, the idea of "purgatory" is
- related to the idea of the astral plane.
- Also on the astral plane are a whole host of creatures and inhabitants
- that are native to that plane, such as faires, devas, and other such things.
- Believe it or not, according to occultists, the astral plane is also
- where we go at night when we dream. When you are in a dream, you are
- quite literally in the astral plane. This is a very important idea, and
- later on, when we begin discussing techniques for astral projecting, you
- will see how important this idea is.
-
- 3. The Mental Plane. The mental plane is the world of all thoughts and ideas.
- On the mental plane, thoughts are *REAL OBJECTS*, and these objects are
- called "THOUGHT-FORMS". "Thoughts are things" is a common idea in occultism,
- and this idea refers to the fact that thought-forms exist as real live
- things on the mental plane. The mental plane is a dynamically brilliant
- world of ever-shifting abstract landscapes of color, sound and sights that
- would probably make the ordinary person go stark raving mad if they could
- actually see the mental plane for what it is.
- The mental plane overlaps substantially with the astral plane, and
- there is every good chance you will see numerous thought-forms as you
- learn to astral project. However, chances are very good that you will NOT
- ever perceive the mental plane as distinct from the astral plane, so
- chances are good you will never see the stuff that could make you lose
- your mind. The reason this is so is because it takes a lot of talent to get
- to the mental plane. I personally have never been there and am only
- describing to you what I have read about it. Again, we will say more about
- this throughout these notes.
-
- 4. The Buddhic Plane. According to occult ideas, this is the highest
- plane that we can access as humans, within the context of what we
- understand as a "human being". In effect, the buddhic plane is the
- realm of our soul. The energies of the buddhic plane that we use in
- our daily life are the following: inspiration, great creativity, compassion,
- wisdom, will-power. It is by these types of behaviors that the buddhic
- plane "leaks" into our regular physical lives.
- In and of itself, the buddhic plane is supremely abstract and extremely
- powerful. Just like the mental plane, it is very unlikely that you will
- ever go to the buddhic plane in a projection. It takes even more talent
- to focus your consciousness exclusively on the buddhic plane than it does
- for the mental plane.
- However, learning to access the energies of the buddhic plane will be
- critical for your continued success astral projecting. In a nutshell,
- the buddhic plane represents everything that makes human life good. The
- more of this you have in your aura (we will discuss aura below), the
- "lighter" you will be in your consciousness, and therefore, you will be
- able to travle through a broader range of the planes than otherwise. On
- the other hand, the less buddhic energy you have in your aura, the harder
- it will be for you to astral project, and as well, you will project into
- ugly regions of the planes, and in general, probably hurt yourself in the
- attempt to project. Maybe not hurt yourself physically, but emotionally
- and mentally.
-
- Before going on about the "highest" three planes, I want to digress
- on what will be an important theme throughout these notes, and this is
- the place to do it; in the context of the buddhic plane. In effect, the
- buddhic plane is related to morals, wisdom and creativity. These are
- very important qualities no matter what activity you want to undertake. In
- this regard, astral projection is no exception.
- Now, above, I said astral projection is only dangerous if you are
- ignorant about what is going on. Now it is time to explain what this means.
- You have to realize straight up that astral projection takes you into realms
- where the subjective becomes *ABSOLUTELY REAL*. All your ideas, fears,
- fantasies, become real things outside of you when you project. See, when
- you project, you will be somewhere, and in this somewhere (whether we call
- it a "plane" or whatever) all the things you think are subjective will
- become *objective*! What this means in practical terms is that, when
- you astral project, you will confront yourself, your own personality,
- in ways that are totally different than how you relate to yourself when
- awake here in the physical plane. For example, if you have phobias in
- your personality, these may become monsters that try to attack you in your
- astral projection. Such an experience will more likely than not scare
- the **** out of you, and, if you don't understand what's going on, such
- an experience may completely scare you away from astral projecting ever
- again. So, its EXTREMELY important that you understand that, in a sense,
- during a projection, your personality is "outside" of you, and not
- "inside" of you as it appears to be here in the physical world. In a very
- strong sense, astral projecting is a form of therapy, of self-therapy.
-
- When you intitially begin to project, the first things you will encounter
- will be things of your own creation. Some authors refer to this as
- meeting the "dweller on the threshold". Again, this "Dweller" is all the
- petty, all the bad, all the fear that you have in you. I'm not lying about
- this either - it has happened to me. It's a stage you very likely will
- encounter. In a sense, all these negative elements of your personality
- are like a wall or room in the astral plane, that you will go to when
- you first begin to project. It is imperative that you realize that
- this is YOU. There is nothing to be afraid of because it IS you. You
- have complete control over these elements. YOU CAN BANISH THEM
- SIMPLY BY UNDERSTANDING THEM FOR WHAT THEY ARE. Your consciousness of
- your self is like a healing fire that can burn away these negative elements
- by understanding them. Once you confront these negative aspects of your
- self, they will disappear and you will have grown with new self-insight.
- This growing is called "maturing", and occurs because of buddhic plane
- energies. It takes will-power to confront these things in yourself, and it
- takes wisdom and compassion to see them for what they are and to accept
- them.
-
- So, one way or another, anyone aspiring to astral project will very
- likely be confronted with this "dweller on the threshold". By dealing
- with it, you get past it, and you grow. And then, after this first stage
- is passed, your experiences on the planes will not be as contaminated
- by personal factors. As the personal factors become less a part of your
- astral projection experiences, then your experiences there will reflect
- more clearly these planes as they objectively exist, uncontaminated
- by your subconscious influences. This process is like cleaning off a
- window. The cleaner the window is, the better you can see through it.
- Likewise, when you project, the cleaner your personality is, the
- better you will be able to see through it into the planes.
-
- Which leads me to state an important idea I have not stated yet, and that
- is that the planes are extremely plastic. They are moulded by your
- slightest emotion, desire or thought. The second you think something,
- a little piece of the mental plane is shaped exactly into your thought
- pattern, making a thought-form. This is exactly why your initial
- experiences projecting will be so extremly colored by your personality.
-
- So, that's it for an introduction to the moral side of astral projecting.
- Unlike almost any other activity we humans know of, you CANNOT be a moral
- retard and succeed at projecting. You can be a moral retard (i.e. have no
- moral values whatsoever) in art, science, buisness (where you actually have
- an advantage!) or other activities of life, but you cannot if you want to
- succeed astral projecting. If you DO try to project and at the same time
- stay morally poverty stricken, well, it is then that astral projection
- *can* be dangerous. It is just built like this.
-
- Though morals seem like subjective gobbly goop in our physical life,
- they are, in reality, the laws upon which our entire human existence
- is based. Just as we need to know the laws of gravity to build a
- spaceship, we likewise need to know the laws of moral behavior to
- succeed at ANY occult task. The only time occultism is dangerous
- is if you use it in an amoral fashion.
-
- And don't worry, you don't need to follow a particular creed or dogma or
- anything like that. The beauty of astral projecting is that you will find
- out EXACTLY what YOU need to grow. You are unique, your needs are unique
- and so will be your projections. The messages they will contain will be
- EXACTLY what YOU need at whatever stage you are at in your life. Simply
- trust the process, go with it, and it will work fine. All you have to do
- is be honest with yourself.
-
- So, that said, let's get back to describing the planes:
-
- 5. Atmic plane. On this plane, what we think of as "human" no longer
- makes any sense. There are no indivdual personalities on this plane.
- Seth, from the Seth material by Jane Roberts, reflects what the atmic
- plane is like. Here, consciousness exists as the simultaneous experience
- of a number of incarnations. Sure, we can say the concept easy enough,
- and even understand intellectually the idea. However, the actual direct
- experience of this state of consciousness is totally outside of our scope.
- Over our head! If you can get your consciousness to focus on this level,
- then "you" will no longer exist! Good Luck!
-
- 6. Anupadaka Plane. Even more abstact than the atmic plane. Here everything
- bleeds into everything else. Extraordinarily abstract! Again, we might
- conceptualize the idea of everything being a part of everything else,
- but on this plane, that's the way it *is*! No dualisms either -
- all the contradictions are inside of each other! Mind Candy! Overload!!!!!
- Again, good luck out here!
-
- 7. Adi plane. God is here. If atmic and anupadaka were weird, well,
- this is the weirdest of 'em all. Completely beyond anything we humans
- can say, do, feel, think, etc. Yet, adi is the very essence of everything.
- Look for the billboards with all the great mystic's names on them!<g> I
- can say this though, the more buddhic energy you have in your aura, the
- better a feel you get for adi.
-
- So, that's a rough run down of the 7 major planes of our universe according
- to occult doctrine. Again, if you've not heard these ideas before, then
- its quite a mindful to swallow all at once - and what's worse, I'm
- not done with the occult ideas yet! For those of you familiar with
- these ideas, forgive me if I've left out a detail or two from your favorite
- schemata. It was not my intention to be all encompassing here, but simply
- to provide enough background for later discussions. And I'd like to
- quickly say that I've included attempts at defining the atmic, anupadaka
- and adi planes simply because I'm sick of seeing lists of the planes that
- state simply "we cannot understand these last 3 planes" or "beyond human
- comprehension". Sure, in terms of our direct experience, these statements
- about the 3 highest planes are true. However, as my experience with occult
- matters has progressed, I have developed the above intuitions about the
- nature of these planes, and, you can take them for what they are worth
- to you.
-
- So, according to occult ideas, there are these 7 planes. We can't see
- them, but they are there nonetheless. And, to repeat, occultists use
- these ideas to explain the nature of both death and dreams, as well
- as astral projection and all other psychic powers, including
- clairvoyance, psychometry and whatever other favorite psychic
- powers you want to add to the list.
-
- (discussion continued in FILE 2)
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 1
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_02.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 2 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS ASTRAL PROJECTION? PART 2
-
-
-
- A. Occult Views (continued from file 1)
-
- i. Occult Anatomy
-
- So, we have defined the planes. Now let us define the vehicles or
- "bodies" we possess for interacting with the planes.
-
- According to occult theory, we have 5 bodies. These are:
-
- 1. The Physical Body
- 2. The Etheric Body
- 3. The Astral Body
- 4. The Mental Body
- 5. The Buddhic Body
-
- Now, when we define these bodies, we must define them from two
- perspectives at the same time. The first perspective is how these
- different bodies manifest in our normal waking life, and the second
- perspective is to define these bodies in terms of focusing your
- consciousness exclusively in that body and using it as a vehicle
- for perceiving its respective plane.
-
- Also, it's important to say at the start that, in all reality, these five
- bodies are one body. These bodies operate simultaneously and are highly
- integrated. While we are awake here in the physical plane, we haven't the
- slightest clue that we have these five bodies because they each work
- so smoothly together that all we recognize is our unified perception
- and experience. In actuality, these 5 bodies represent the major FUNCTIONS
- we have as human beings. From the standpoint of our normal waking life,
- it is almost arbitrary to define the human being in terms of these 5 bodies.
- However, it is in their utility for explaining altered states of
- consciousness that the definitions of these bodies will be found to be
- very useful. Thus, once we get more into the specifics of astral
- projecting, we will see how useful this scheme of 5 bodies is.
- And what we will see too is that defining human nature
- in terms of these 5 bodies will put us in an excellent position to
- understand very clearly our normal life here in the physical world.
- So, having said this, let's discuss each body in turn.
-
-
- 1. The Physical Body. This is the body that we know. This is the body
- with eyes and ears, hands and feet, internal organs, a brain and nervous
- system. This is our organic body made of molecules and electricity,
- pulsating with the living energies of the Earth and Sun.
- The best way to think of your physical body is that it is like
- a TV set. As a TV set allows you to tune into specific channels, likewise
- your physical body allows you (i.e your consciousness) to tune into the
- physical world. As a matter of fact, this is how you should think of
- all 5 bodies. Each body is a "tuner" that allows us to tune into the
- plane corresponding to that body. So, your physical body perceives
- the physical world of 3-D space and 1 dimensional time.
- I said above that we need to view each body from two perspectives:
- 1. in terms of normal waking experience, and 2. in terms of altered
- states of consciousness. For the physical body, it is the only body
- we directly perceive while awake in the physical world. And when
- we are in an altered state of consciousness (such as dreams), we no
- longer perceive the physical body. There are exceptions to this last
- statement, but in general, it is true. Once we get into techniques
- for inducing astral projections, you will see that one way to
- "leave" your body entails losing consciousness of your physical body
- while at the same time gaining consciousness of your astral or etheric
- body.
-
- 2. The Etheric Body. As was stated above, occultists consider the etheric
- plane to be the invisible aspects of the physical plane. So then, it
- follows that our etheric body is then the invisible parts of our
- physical body. To give you an idea of what our etheric body may look
- like consider this. Hopefully you have seen how grains of iron will line
- up around a magnet, aligning with the magnetic field lines. Well, both
- our hearts and our brains are very electrical organs which are constantly
- emitting electrical fields. These fields emitted by the heart and brain
- are invisible to our senses, but are easily measured by machines (which
- is what the EKGs and EEGs used by doctors are). If you could literally
- perceive these electrical fields that come from your brain and heart, you
- would be seeing part of your etheric body.
- Also, there is electricity constantly pulsing along the nerves
- throughout our entire body. Again, we cannot directly perceive these
- flowing nerve energies, but they are there nonetheless. And again, these
- nerve energies are a part of our etheric body. As a matter of fact, though
- some may debate this, the acupuncture charts of Tantra traditions are charts
- of the flowing of energies through the etheric body.
- Some occult teachings describe the etheric body as being made of a
- blue glowing substance.
- Now, from our the point of view of our waking experience, the etheric
- body is the basis of all sensation and perception. When you feel something
- with your hand, smell something, see something or whatever, these sensations
- are registering in your etheric body. This is why you do not perceive
- things happening in the physical plane when you are asleep or unconscious.
- See, it is a mistake to think that your physical/organic body perceives
- things. Your organic body is like a lens that *focuses* sensations. These
- focused sensations then register in your etheric body, which means they
- are brought into your awareness. The physical/organic body is a machine
- that *conveys* sensation. The etheric body is the body that *registers
- and interprets* sensation.
- Those of you who are expert enough in physiology to argue with me about
- these ideas can feel free to do so.
- Now, from the point of view of altered states of consciousness, it
- is possible to move about in the etheric body independently from your
- physical/organic body. This is very difficult to do though. You can
- always tell that you are in your etheric body because you feel very heavy
- and it is very hard to move. Also, it is likely that if you are in your
- etheric body, then you will be in a dark, and sometimes, scary subplane.
- (More on this point below). Robert Monroe describes moving in his etheric
- body, but does not call it such.
- Also, it is likely that you have experienced having your consciousness
- focused in your etheric body, but did not know it. This usually happens
- right when you are waking up or falling asleep. Have you ever had the
- experience of waking up in bed and trying to move, or trying to talk but
- not being able to do so? If so, you might have even felt scared. If this
- has ever happened to you, what is actually going on here is that you
- are actually *not* awake. Instead, you have "woken up" on the etheric
- plane in your etheric body by accident. For those of you that have had
- such experiences, be happy, because these were actually etheric projections!
- We will learn below how to cultivate the ability to do this, and also
- what to do when you find yourself in this position.
-
- 3. The Astral Body. From the point of view of being awake here in the
- physical world, your astral body is the emotions and desires you feel.
- You know how sometimes you get real distinct "vibes" from people? Maybe
- someone makes you feel creepy, or another person uplifts you and
- makes you feel good, and yet other people seem to drain you of your energy?
- Well these "vibes" are in actuality you sensing that person's astral body.
- When you get angry, or sad, happy or feel any emotion, you are feeling
- your own astral body. When you sense these emotions in another person
- (which is called "empathy") you are feeling that person's astral body.
- Now, again, some people will argue with this, saying that emotions
- are a part of the brain, contained in the nerves of the limbic system.
- However, I again will say that these brain regions that relate to emotion
- are gateways between the physical body and the astral body. Feeling emotion
- is not dependent upon having a physical/organic body. After you die you
- will continue to feel emotions because emotions originate in your astral
- body.
- Now, in terms of altered states of consciousness, when we start getting
- into the meat of astral projection, the vast majority of your OOBEs will
- occur in your astral body. This is the body you use at night when you are
- dreaming and your physical body is asleep. Thus, the world you will be in
- when you astral project will be extremely similar to the world you are in
- when you dream at night. We will have much more to say about the
- astral body and its properties as we proceed.
-
- 4. The Mental Body. During normal waking life, you perceive your mental
- body as your mind. You think thoughts, see images in your imagination
- (your "mind's eye"), can hear songs and voices "in your head". All of these
- phenomena are occuring in your mental body. Again, you can argue and
- say that all of these things occur in your brain, and that, if you did
- not have a brain, then you would not think thoughts, see things in your
- "mind's eye" or hear things in your head. And again, I will counter and
- say that the brain is a CHANNEL, a "machine" that allows these mental
- events to manifest on the physical plane. If you have no brain, you
- cannot express your mental behavior on the physical plane. However, having
- no physical brain does not prevent you from expressing your thoughts
- and ideas on the astral and mental planes.
- And to repeat again, once you learn to project for yourself, you can
- decide who is right in these kinds of debates. Below we will discuss
- these types of debates a little more, but for now, all I'm trying to do
- is convey occult ideas about human anatomy.
- From the point of view of altered states of consciousness, shifting
- the focus of your consciousness to your mental body will allow you to
- directly perceive the mental plane. I've already stated that this is very
- difficult, and that I have never done it. In the bibliography I reference
- books by people who describe what the mental plane looks like. It is
- supposedly extremely beautiful, but I suppose this depends on what
- level of the mental plane you perceive.
-
-
- 5. The Buddhic Body. We've discussed the buddhic body already in the
- statements I made about morals and astral projecting. To repeat here:
- In our normal waking life, buddhic energy manifests as: creativity,
- novelty, spontaneity, wisdom, compassion, will power, sudden insight,
- great genius, great leadership abilities, deep spirituality. Other times,
- buddhic energy may manifest as death, disease and decay (this is
- the Hindu image of Shiva the Destroyer). Whatever your situation
- demands for growth, this is what the buddhic energy will manifest as.
- Ideas such as "God", "Tao", etc. refer to buddhic energy. However,
- religion is not buddhic energy, though it may be a channel for it.
- One very powerful source of buddhic energy is the Grateful Dead.
- Buddhic energy is the underlying essence of LIFE. It is everywhere
- and permeates everything we know. As far as being human goes, there
- is nothing more powerful than buddhic energy. We can think of buddhic
- energy however we please. It does not matter what we call it or what we
- think of it. Buddhic energy is the energy that moves our very minds.
- Mystics speak of the ineffable essence that underlies and unifies all
- reality. This ineffable essence is buddhic plane energy.
- In terms of altered states of consciousness, it is extremely
- unlikely that anyone reading this will learn to focus their consciousness
- onto the buddhic plane. It is simply too subtle to do so. It IS possible
- to take LSD and feel the buddhic energy while you are awake here in the
- physical world. However, though this is not as difficult as focusing
- directly onto the buddhic plane, it takes great mastery over the LSD
- experience to be able to use it to perceive the buddhic energy that
- fills every nook and cranny of all life.
- Now, ironically, though it seems the buddhic energy is the
- hardest to attain, it turns out to be the energy you should most desire
- to attain. Frankly, astral projecting is nothing compared to attaining
- buddi, or learning how to have buddhic energies play through your being.
- Earlier I mentioned that there were Eastern and Western views of
- occultism, and till now have made no attempt to distinguish between
- them. However, when it comes to opening yourself up to buddhic energy,
- Eastern occultism has always been crystal clear about this, whereas
- Western occultism is not always so clear. Eastern occultism is yoga, and
- the purpose of yoga is to become enlightened. Becoming enlightened is
- exactly the same as opening up to the buddhic energies. This process
- goes under many names: enlightenment, samasamadi, mysticism, cosmic
- consciousness, satori. All these words refer to the same thing.
- However, it is not my purpose in these notes to digress on mysticism.
- For the interested reader, see the reference by van der Leeuww in the
- bibliography.
-
- To conclude this brief overview of occult anatomy, I would like to define
- the word "aura", which I used above and will have occasion to use
- throughout these notes. The word "aura" is a generic term and can refer
- to any one of the nonphysical bodies by itself or in combination with
- the other nonphysical bodies. I use the term to refer to all the non-
- physical bodies at once. Some people use the term to refer specifically
- to the astral body. "Aura" is a vague term. I prefer, when speaking,
- to call a specific body by its proper name. And again, if I want to
- refer to the four nonphysical bodies (i.e. etheric, astral, mental
- and buddhic) simultaneously, I will use the word "aura".
-
- So, we have gone over occult physics and occult anatomy. All of this to
- give some idea of the occult interpretation of the astral projection/OOBE
- experience! What I have done above it to lay out in a barebones outline
- the elements of the occult *worldview*. And a barebones outline it is.
- Again, readers that want more detail should consult the bibliography.
- What I have covered above, though, is sufficient for our purposes here.
-
- To summarize, occultists teach that there are 7 planes and that we have
- bodies for perceiving 4 of these planes. By this view, altered states
- of consciousness are explained by the fact that we shift our conscious
- awareness from the physical plane/body to one of our other, nonphysical
- bodies and perceive events occuring on the respective plane. This is
- indeed one of the valid theoretical approaches to explaining astral
- projection. And, as I've already said, we will find this is the most
- useful view to take. Below I will go into other theories of what
- astral projection is, but, when we start attempting to be practical
- and put the various theories to the test of practice, we will find our-
- selves returning to the occult theory again and again to explain what
- happens to us when we are "out of body".
-
-
- B. Scientific Views
-
- Other ideas exist about astral projection besides the occult ideas
- expressed above. I classify these other views under the heading
- "scientific" because these views mainly stem from the attempts of
- scientists of various persuasions to understand the OOBE experience.
- The persuasions of scientists of interest here are psychologists and
- parapsychologists. These are the folks, other than occultists, who
- have given us ideas about the astral projection experience. What I will
- do is explain some of these nonoccult ideas, then afterward make some
- attempt to compare the occult and nonoccult views of the projection
- experience. After that I will then try to tie everything together
- and provide the theoretical framework we will use throughout the rest
- of these notes.
-
-
- i. Parapsychology - OOBEs
-
- At begining I said I would use the terms "astral projection" and
- "OOBE" (which stands for "out-of-body experience") interchangeably.
- Hopefully, you now understand what the term "astral projection" means
- and where it comes from. Now we are going to look at the term "OOBE".
- The term "OOBE" is a word coined by parapsychologists. Parapsychology,
- as a science, began with the work of a man named J.B. Rhine who did
- statistical experiments on psychic powers at Duke University in the
- 1930s. Rhine's application of statistics to psychic phenomena gave
- rise to the tradition of parapsychology, a "science" which has had
- a questionable and spotted reputation from its inception. Generally
- speaking, parapsychologists have been interested in displaying the
- existence of so-called psychic abilities, or "psi" as they term it,
- using statistics and other props such as dice, or the relatively
- famous ESP cards that you may have seen.
- What can be said about parapsychology? Not very much actually.
- Frankly, other fields of science don't take parapsychologists very
- seriously. And because parapsychologists have been so preoccupied
- with proving that psychic powers exist by statistical tests, they
- have done little to offer real explanations of psychic phenomena.
- We saw above that occultists explain psychic powers with the theory
- of the planes and nonphysical bodies, and that psychic powers are the
- result of shifting the focus of our consciousness from the physical
- plane to one of the other planes. Basically, parapsychologists have
- not been able to provide a competing explanation of psychic powers.
- And what's even worse, parapsychologists, on the whole, have completely
- ignored the ideas of occultists.
- What parapsychologists have done over the 60 or so years that they've
- been around is to coin a bunch of new words like "psi", "ESP", "OOBE",
- "remote viewing" and many other jargons, without having any really clear
- meaning of these words. The result of this is that parapsychologists
- have created more confusion than clarity. Many of the terms they have coined
- (such as "ESP" or "OOBE") are now common in our language, yet these
- terms have no precise meaning. Earlier, I said that theory without
- practice is just empty talk. Unfortunately, this is what parapsychology
- is: a lot of talk and very little action.
- For example, the term OOBE was coined in the 1960s. Apparently, the
- older term "astral projection", and its occult implications, was to be
- ignored. What does the term OOBE mean? Well, "out of body experience"
- seems to mean that you leave your body. But the questions immediately
- come up: *What* leaves? and *Where* does it go? I guess it's nice, at least,
- that parapsychologists recognize that the OOBE phenomena exists.
- Unfortunately, the work by parapsychologists on the OOBE have produced
- results that parapsychologists did not expect.
- The type of experiments parapsychologists have done on OOBEs are
- things such as putting a person in a room to project, and in an adjacent,
- locked room, putting a piece of paper with something written on it, and then
- expecting the projector to "leave his body", go into the locked room, and
- read what's on the paper. These types of experiments have prodced very
- mixed results which are by no means easy to interpret. Mostly they have been
- unsuccessful because the person projecting could not project, or, if the
- person did project, then they did not accurately read the message in the
- locked room, or never even made it into the locked room!
- What are we to make of the results of these parapsycholgoy experiments?
- Well, first, let's look under the hood, so to speak, at the implications
- inherent in the designs of these parapsychology experiments. Unlike
- occultists, who very clearly state their premises, parapsychologists never
- clearly lay out their intentions. Thus we are forced to second guess them
- to some extent. So, let's do this.
- So, we asked: what leaves the body and where does it go? Well, the
- experimental design above does not directly address the question of *what*
- leaves the body. Yet, the fact that the parapsychologist expects the
- projector to bring back information implies that at least the para-
- psychologist knows that it is the person's awareness that is "leaving
- the body".
- Of much more importance though is the question: *where* does this
- disembodied awareness go? Well, the answer to this question is very obvious
- from the experimental design above. The parapsychologist obviously
- expects the projecting person to go into the adjacent room. What this
- means is that the parapsychologist assumes that *whatever is leaving
- the body stays in the physical world*. This is a key point for
- understanding the meaning of the term OOBE. That is to say, the term
- "OOBE", as used by parapsychologists, implies that there is only a
- physical world, and that there are not any planes as occultists
- describe. Obviously, when I use the term OOBE in these notes, I do not
- mean this.
- Now, the lack of success that parapsychologists have encountered in
- the type of experiments described above has forced some parapsychologists
- to rethink their ideas. In the past few years, certain parapsychologists
- have begun to recognize the possibility that the OOBE subject does NOT
- project into the physical world, and that there must be some non-
- physical world in which the OOBE occurs. In particular, these ideas
- have been stated by both D. Scott Rogo and Lawrence LeShan, who are both
- noted parapsychologists. However, only D. Scott Rogo has gone so far as
- to suggest that occult ideas might be the correct explanation of the
- OOBE experience. Rogo himself learned how to have OOBEs, and came to this
- conclusion based on his own first hand experience. Again, if all goes well,
- then you too can be like Rogo and go and see for yourself. To read
- about Rogo's experiences, look for his book listed in the bibiography.
- Rogo's book, which is called "Leaving The Body", is actually an
- important reference and all of you are highly encouraged to read this
- book.
- However, Rogo's view is not widely held by the few parapsychologists
- who are around today, and generally speaking, parapsychologists still
- cling to the notion that psychic powers (or "psi" as they call it),
- including OOBEs, are purely physical phenomena.
- So, this is what the term OOBE really means: it implies a purely
- physical view of the projection experience. As I said, I don't use the
- term OOBE in this fashion, but parapsychologists do.
- This is all I will say about the parapsychological view at this point.
- We will return to it below when we compare occult and nonoccult views
- later in the discussion.
-
-
- ii. Psychology - Lucid Dreaming
-
- The next nonoccult view we shall discuss is the view that comes
- to us from the science of psychology. Now, anyone familiar with academic
- psychology knows that there are many schools of thought in psychology
- including: Freudian views, the views of Carl Jung, the psychology of
- Abraham Maslow, behavioralist psychology, cognitive psychology, psychiatry,
- physiological psychology and neurology - just to name a few! I do not
- plan on discussing all of these different schools of thought here. If the
- reader has enough interest in these topics, you can go read up on them
- for yourself. What I want to do here is outline the broad features of
- the ideas in psychology relevant to the astral projection experience,
- and outline these in enough detail so that 1. you at least know that
- such ideas exist, and 2. you are able to compare these ideas to the occult
- and parapsychological ideas of the projection experience.
-
- In general, psychologists are not stupid. They have observed many
- altered states of consciousness and come up with a number of theories
- to account for these altered states of consciousness. Psychologists
- recognize astral projection under a vareity of names: lucid dreams,
- dissociative experiences, near death experiences, hypnogogia (of which we
- will have much to say about later). From what I've seen
- in the psychological literature, no one has really tied all these
- experiences together under one unified theory. Each of these phenomena
- is thought of in different terms. Even the fact of dreaming has not
- been clearly tied into the fact of astral projection by any psychologists
- as far as I know.
-
- Now, in the last few years, there have been a number of books published
- by psychologists involving lucid dreams (one such book is called "Have
- a Lucid Dream in 30 Days" - but I do not remember the author). These
- books are "how to do it" books for having lucid dreams, and are quite
- effective as it goes. However, where they lack is in having a good
- understanding of what the lucid dream experience is. One such book that
- I read said something to the effect "No one knows what a lucid dreams is..."
- and I thought to myself, "*YOU* don't know what a lucid dream is!".
- So, for those of you that read these types of books, what I'm saying
- here is that these books may show you how to actually have a lucid
- dream, but the theory they teach you about the nature of lucid dreaming
- is not very good, and, as I've already stated, the theory is important
- for helping you understand what is happening to you once you start
- projecting. The more powerful the theory, the more effective will be
- your projection experiences. The flimsy theories of psychologists will
- aid you only so far, and there are many things you will experience
- when you project that these theories cannot explain.
-
- Lucid dreams ARE astral projections. When we get into techniques below,
- we will use this idea in one of our techniques. The idea of a lucid dream
- is that it is a dream in which you are aware that you are dreaming. As I
- said earlier, occultists teach that the place where we go dream is the
- astral plane. However, this idea is not accepted in modern psychology.
- The psychologists have a much "softer" view of the projection experience,
- calling it a lucid dream. Interestingly, psychologists have no explanation
- of what dreams are! Some work under the idea that dreams are a vivid
- hallucination created in your brain while you sleep. Others have more
- nebulous ideas about collective unconsciousnesses and similar stuff.
- Freudians look upon dreams as a symbolic realm where repressions are
- stored up. To some extent each of these views is correct - correct that is,
- but highly incomplete. Taken together, the ideas in psychology about
- dreams and lucid dreams, at best, paint a somewhat confusing mosaic of
- sometimes conflicting ideas about the nature of dream and lucid dream
- experiences. At their worst, the ideas in psychology about dreams and
- lucid dreaming can lead you into an intellectual maze of jargon and
- speculation that will only confuse you and not help you one iota
- in your quest to actually project! If this happens, you are wasting
- your time and energy.
-
- So basically, we have seen that "astral projection" is an occult term.
- "OOBE" is a term from parapsychology. The term "lucid dreaming"
- is a term from psychology. A lucid dream is a dream in which you are
- aware that you are dreaming. However, psychologists offer no really
- convincing and complete idea of how dreams work or exactly what their
- nature is.
-
- And again, I am fully open to debate the ideas I present here. If any
- of you do not like what I have to say, or if you think I am wrong in
- the ideas I am presenting, please feel free to challenge me on any point
- you wish.
-
-
- ---------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 2
- ---------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_03.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 3 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- WHAT IS ASTRAL PROJECTION? PART 3
-
-
-
- 3. Tying It All Together
-
- So, we have discussed the three main terms used to describe the
- experience I hope to teach you, and the origins of these terms.
- What is important to realize is that EACH OF THESE TERMS STEMS
- FROM A DIFFERENT VIEW OF THE WORLD. Many beginners in astral
- projection ask "what is the difference between an astral projection
- and an OOBE?" or "what is the difference between an OOBE and a
- lucid dream?" Well, the answer to this is that each of these
- words stems from a group of people with different views about
- Nature and Humankind. *That* is the difference between these words.
- In terms of the phenomena to which they refer, they all refer to the
- exact same thing. Each of these words represents a DIFFERENT
- INTERPRETATION of this phenomena, which is the experience of
- projecting. Debating about the meaning of these 3 terms is useless
- unless the debating is based on experience. What is important is learning
- HOW TO PROJECT, and that is what we shall focus on here. However,
- all of this introductory material is provided so that you students
- have some understanding of the different interpretations that exist.
- You are, of course, completely free to pick the interpretation you like
- best. However, I think it is more important to be open minded than
- to be of strong opinions.
-
- We are now going to compare these three terms. To summarize:
-
- Term Associated World View
- ---------------------------------------------------
- Astral Projection Occultism
- Out-of-body Experience Parapsychology
- Lucid Dream Psychology
-
-
- What we want to do at this point is come up with some way to understand
- how these three views of the astral projection experience are related
- to each other. First off, as I said, it is my opinion, based on my
- experiences with altered states of consciousness, that these three terms
- refer to the exact same phenomena. Lucid dreams, OOBEs, and
- astral projections are all identical experiences. Again, it is
- my opinion that to attempt to define these three terms as referring to 3
- different phenomena is like spiltting hairs - in other words, a waste
- of time.
- Perhaps the most important distinction one can make amongst the
- *viewpoints* represented by these three terms is the following. Basically,
- the difference in these 3 terms gets down to different ways to view the
- nature of our consciousness and our definitions of what it is to be a
- human being. And, after having thought about this for a long time, it
- is now clear to me that there are essentially two, mutually exclusive
- ways to view the nature of human consciousness. These two views can
- be stated thus:
-
- 1. Human consciousness is soley and completely a product of the brain.
- Which is to say, our existence is purely physical. All of the underlying
- causes of our consciousness are grounded in the laws of chemistry,
- physics and biology. In other words, physical causes underlie human
- consciousness, period. For simplicity's sake, we will call this the
- "materialistic view" of human consciousness.
-
- 2. Human consciousness in NOT physical. Human consciousness, in its
- fundamental essence is NONPHYSICAL. Our physical body is not the cause of
- our consciousness, but is instead a vehicle by which to express our
- consciousness in the physical world. This view we will call the "occult
- view", because it is the view that occultists teach. It does not matter
- what particular brand of occultism we subscribe to. All branches of
- occult thought share this underlying axiom, as do most religious teachings.
-
- So, this is the vital dichotomy we are faced with: either our physical-
- organic body is the cause of our consciousness, or our physical-organic
- body is a vehicle for allowing our consciousness to access the physical
- world.
-
- That's it. It boils down to these two simple alternatives.
-
- Now, with regard to the 3 terms listed above, and their corresponding
- world views, we can say that, in general, parapsychologists and
- psychologists share the materialistic view and that occultists possess
- the occult view of the nature of human consciousness.
-
- Now, these generalizations must be qualified by the following statements.
- First, all psychologists and parapsychologists may not be materialists as
- I have defined this term above. Each person, of course, will have their
- individual beliefs that may or may not see human consciousness in some
- framework other than in purely physical terms. I am not trying to say
- that all people who are psychologists and parapsychologists believe
- that consciousness is purely physical. What I am saying however is
- the traditions of both psychology and parapsychology - in their
- official (or psuedo-official in the case of parapsychology) stances
- as academic institutions of learning and science, have traditionally
- NOT accepted the occult ideas that consciousness is nonphysical. And further,
- both psychology and parapsychology have at times been blatant materialists
- (as is behavioralist psychology or the typical statistical parapsychology).
-
- And most importantly, the idea that the physical body CAUSES consciousness
- is indeed the official platform of higher learning in our Universities
- today. This is the basis by which modern medical science operates,
- it is the basis of all academic forms of science from anthropology
- to sociology to physics to evolutionary biology. Nothing could be more
- foreign in the context of modern university learning than the occult
- ideas of human consciousness.
-
- So, that's it. Two different views of consciousness, three different
- terms to describe the experience of projecting. All that I've said
- above, taken together, forms the basic outline of the theory behind
- astral projection. My main intention here is simply to expose you to
- these ideas. I do not really care to debate about the relative merit of
- these ideas any further than in terms of their utility at helping us
- astral project. There are a lot of open questions that surround astral
- projecting. Anyone that tries to sell you on one particular
- interpretation of the astral projection experience is pulling your leg.
- None of the three terms above does any more than capture
- facets of the experience. If you are so inclined, feel free to pick
- your favorite views and go with them. Personally, it is my opinion that
- the best you can do is be aware of the variety of viewpoints that exist
- (whether it's about astral projecting or anything else), and eclectically
- draw upon these different views as circumstances demand. Being open to
- things is much more important than anything else, especially in this
- business of altered states of consciousness.
-
-
-
-
- 4. Radio Station theory of consciousness - The Subplanes
-
- Well, we're almost done with the theory stuff! What I'm going to do
- now is to present the theory I personally use to explain my own
- projections. In doing so, we will also start to make the transition
- between me talking about other people's ideas and me talking about
- my actual experiences. The "radio station theory of consciousness" has
- come from my need to have a unified way to think about all the things that
- have happened to me in my projections. Basically, this "radio station view
- of consciousness" is a take-off on the occult ideas I outlined above.
- It posits that there are nonphysical places we can take our consciousness;
- in other words, planes. The reason I believe this is because, in a
- number of my projections, I have been in places that *looked like* places
- I know on the physical plane (my own bedroom and house mostly). However,
- when I explore these environments in my projections, and then wake-up
- back here on the physical plane and go and study the exact same place,
- I always observe numerous differences. So, my conclusion is that, where
- ever I'm at during my projection, it is definately NOT the physical world
- I am in when I am awake.
-
- Another thing I have consistently experienced in my projections is the
- fact that sometimes when I project I am *somewhere* but other times I am
- *nowhere*. In the journal I keep of my experiences, I call the
- "somewhere" "episodes", and I call the "nowhere" I go the "void".
-
- When I am in an episode I can be anywhere - for there are a lot of places
- to be in the planes! It may be a sunny meadow, a strange abstract colored
- landscape, a dark scary place full of zombies, a mall, house, suburb (yes,
- all these things exist on the astral plane!). Any time I am anywhere in
- a projection, I call it an "episode".
-
- The void is altogether different. Imagine being in a completely
- dark, completely silent place with nothing in it. This is what the void
- is. I go to the void almost as frequently as I'm in an episode during
- my projections. Often, as soon as I "leave" my body, I am in the void.
- Or, I may be in an episode and I will "fade-out" and disappear from
- wherever I am at, and I will appear in the void. As well, I've
- discovered ways to get out of the void into an episode, and I will share
- these techniques with you below, just in case you find yourself in the
- void. Now, there is nothing wrong with being in the void. It is actually
- very peaceful there - extremely quiet. However, chances are you will
- be like me and be much more interested in exploring the things going on
- on the planes, in which case you'd rather be somewhere than nowhere!
-
- About episodes: Like I said, I can be anywhere - and I've seen some
- strange stuff! For example, once I stood on a cloud and played guitar
- with a friendly spirit. Another time, a talking rhino gave me a ride
- through a forest. On another occasion I kissed a beautiful girl in
- a lovely soft world of pastel reds and yellows. Once I saw a ghost
- with a Jack-O-Lantern head in an underground passage. Once I was in a
- strange house, and the floor of the kitchen was made of little, rainbow
- colored squirming human bodies! Another time, I saw an abstractly colored
- field of dancing shifting colors. On many occasions, I've found myself
- in these absolutely creepy places popluated by rotting bodies and
- other grotesque creatures. Sometimes I am in places I recognize,
- like my house or my neighborhood, or my old college. Other times I'm
- in places I've never seen before. Buildings are very strange on the planes -
- they seem to go on forever! One hall leads to another leads to another
- leads to another seemingly forever. I will go into some of my experiences
- in much more detail below. Right now all I'm trying to do is give you an
- idea of the incredibly rich variety of places to explore and discover
- in the planes.
-
- There is an occult idea I want to mention at this point that I did not
- mention above and that is the idea that each plane is subdivided into
- subplanes. In Theosophy, it is taught that each plane consists of 7
- subplanes. Just like there are different grades or types of matter on
- the physical plane - solids, liquids, gases, fire, heat and light - well,
- occultists teach that the planes have similar gradations of the matter of
- which each plane is composed, and these gradations in the matter of any
- plane are called subplanes. That is one way to look at the idea at least.
- And there is merit to this idea too. Imagine the spectrum colors of a
- rainbow: red, orange, yellow, green, blue, indigo, and violet (which
- you can easily remember by the acronym ROY G BIV). Red is the lowest of the
- spectrum and violet is the highest. You can use the idea of a rainbow's
- colors as a rough MAP of the subplanes. For each plane there are lower
- subplanes (I will also use the word "region" to mean subplane at times)
- that bleed into intermediate subplanes that bleed into higher subplanes.
- So, lower subplanes of a plane are like red in the rainbow, intermediate
- subplanes like green, and higher subplanes like violet, and of course,
- with all the intervening shades between these.
-
- In terms of the astral plane, the "rainbow" of subplanes forms a
- spectrum of emotion. At the "red" end of the spectrum are the lowest
- and worst of human emotions: hate, anger, greed, lust, envy. Up
- at the higher end of the spectum (the violet end) are the best of
- human emotions: kindness, happiness, warmth, caring and so on. And
- again, there is every combination possible between these two ends
- of the spectrum.
-
- Why is this idea important? Like I said, it helps provide a map
- that will give you some idea of where you are at during a projection.
- This is because, no matter where you find yourself, there will always
- be a "vibe" present, some distinct feeling you get from the place
- where you are at. Some places may scare you, others may make you feel
- very light and happy, others may make you horny, and some may feel
- quite normal to you (in terms of whatever "normal" is to you). These
- vibes that you get, these feelings, give you an indication of what
- subplane you are on.
-
- Having the ability to "map" out where you are at during a projection
- is actually a practical thing, and this is not simply just an intellectual
- exercise. For example, there would be times that I would project and
- appear in a place that gave me a bad vibe. I would then realize I was
- on a lower subplane and then leave it. Of course, if you want, you
- can stay and explore the lower subplanes, which is a useful excercise.
-
- How do you leave a lower subplane? More on this in a later lesson!
-
- So, that is one useful view of the subplanes. There is a second view
- of the subplanes we need to discuss too. This is the view presented
- by Robert Monroe who is a very excellent projector. His three books are
- listed in the bibliography, and Monroe is essential reading for any student
- of astral projection. Monroe speaks of the "rings" and by this he
- means basically a subplane. But the connotations are not the same as
- the theosophical idea. Monroe, in his second book "Far Journeys"
- actually has a map of the rings and what you can expect to find on the
- different levels. THE RINGS CORRESPOND TO STATES OF MIND. And the
- correspondence is like that which I stated above with the rainbow metaphor.
- The scummiest states of mind are on the lowest rings. Average people,
- people not especially bad, but not especially good, are on the rings a
- little farther out. Beyond these are rings that correspond to people
- who are strongly devoted to upholding ideals -be these religious,
- political or intellectual. And farther out are rings that correspond to
- states of mind of the highest nobility and intellect and spirtuality.
- And beyond these rings are quiet rings where you won't find human states
- of mind.
-
- It should be apparent that Monroe's rings sound an awful lot like
- the planes described by occultists. As a matter of fact, they are. Don't
- let the fact that Monroe uses different words fool you - he is describing
- basically the exact same thing that occultists have described. However,
- what is important is that Monroe's descriptions of the rings are BASED
- ON HIS OWN PERSONAL EXPERIENCES. Monroe does not claim to be an occultist,
- so, he made up his own words to describe his experiences. This only makes
- sense.
-
- Again, the point of this digression is that there is an order to where
- you will go and what you will experience in your OOBEs. Whether you
- use the theosophical idea of the subplanes, or Monroe's idea of rings,
- the bottom line is the same: "lower" corresponds to that which we humans
- consider bad and "higher" corresponds to that which we humans consider good.
- And this spectrum from bad places to good places is the map, the
- organization you will encounter in the places you will find yourself
- during your projections.
-
- You're probably wondering: so what does all this have to do with Don's
- "radio station theory of consciousness"? Well, basically, this "radio
- station theory of consciousness" is my description of the organization
- of the subplanes, or rings, based on my actual experiences projecting.
- The reason I use an analogy with a radio is because I experience episodes
- (which is being on a subplane or ring) and I also experience being in the
- void. The idea of my radio station metaphor is this: we all know
- that on the radio there are radio stations you can tune into up and
- down the dial. And what is in between these radio stations? Nothing is, and
- when you tune into a place on the dial where there is no radio station you
- get STATIC. The way I figure it, when I'm in an episode, this is just like
- tuning into a radio station, and when I'm in the void, this is just like
- tuning into the static between radio stations where nothing exists.
- Note that we are adopting the occult viewpoint that explains
- altered states of consciousness as a shift of focus of ones
- consciousness away from the physical world and towards the planes.
- Shifting the focus of your consciousness into the nonphysical planes
- is the same as tuning into that plane. So, that's it, that's the model
- I use to describe my projection experiences. And I should add that this
- "radio dial" of consciousness does indeed follow the order described
- above for subplanes/rings. That is, there really does appear to be a
- gradation in these "radio stations" of consciousness from the most
- horrible and ugly to the most incredibly beautiful and noble.
-
- Now, there is one last remark I have to make about this radio station idea
- that relates to my actual experiences when I project. Up above I made
- the comment of "fading out" of an episode and appearing in the void. What
- I am referring to here is actually a very important aspect of my projection
- experiences that I call the "lock-mold". To understand what I mean by
- lock-mold, again imagine a radio. Now, we have all had the experience
- that sometimes when we try to tune into a station on the radio we don't
- get very good reception and there is a lot of static mixed in with the
- broadcast of the station. We might fiddle with the dial to try to get
- a better reception of the radio station. Well, this is exactly what
- happens to me when I am in an episode. I am extremely literal about this.
- When I am in an episode, I am actually TUNED INTO the subplane I am
- on to some degree from worse to good. I have characterized every single
- projection I have ever had in terms of how good my lockmold is. When
- my lockmold is good that means that I feel very stable and I am
- perceiving wherever I am at very well. When my lockmold is bad, which
- is analogous to getting a lot of static over the radio station, I feel
- very unstable and my perception of the subplane I am on is very poor.
- When I have a bad lockmold during a projection, usually what happens
- is that my vision, hearing and sense of touch on that subplane "blink"
- on and off. Usually, I lose the sense of sight first, touch second, and
- hearing is the last to go. In other words, when I have a bad lockmold
- my vision will blink on and off - I will literally be able to see for a
- moment and then lose it and be blind. I have, over the course of
- my experiences found a number of tricks to stablize my lockmold, and
- these I will discuss ahead.
-
- Now, I bring this idea of lockmold up because - and I really want to
- stress this - it has been a central feature of my projection experiences.
- Like I said, in every single projection I have had I am aware of how
- good or bad my lockmold is. I very strongly suspect that once you
- start projecting, you will also encounter this lockmold feeling, so I
- am telling you about lockmolds, and will tell you the things I've learned
- to control my lockmold, so you will then know what to do when you project
- and start to lose your lockmold.
-
- Really, I am very serious about this. Again, your lockmold is a feeling
- you will have of how well you are tuned into wherever you happen to
- be in your projection. Let me go off on some of my personal
- experiences a bit just to drive this idea of lockmold home to you. Below
- are listed some excerpts from my personal astral projection journal
- which highlight this lockmold phenomena:
-
- 1>
- "...The doorway led into a castle and I was very surprised by this. I
- remember thinking to myself that rooms have all these hidden directions
- in them in the astral plane. It was a huge and elegantly decorated place
- and the decor looked fairly modern. I wandered about and eventually came
- to a room that had a window that was overlooking a long shingled roof.
- I climbed through the window and there was a girl outside on the roof.
- It was sunny outside and I felt very good. Me and the girl talked, but
- I do not remember what we talked about. I could see around me outside,
- what looked like a fairly typical, though completely unfamiliar,
- neighborhood and I was curious to explore it. I went to fly off the roof
- but my lockmold began to weaken and I blacked out...."
-
- 2>
- "...Somehow, I was back in my bedroom, half conscious of the physical [my
- eyes were closed but I could hear sounds outside]. I could then see my
- room as if I was awake (even though my eyes were closed) and there was
- this thing floating in front of me. I stared at it and it seemed to be
- staring at me. It very much reminded me of an insect, but it was a
- foot and a half high. It had a spherical base with what looked like thin
- legs protruding out in all directions. From the base rose a long
- slender neck, and at the top of the neck was a head. The face on the
- head reminded me of a praying mantis, or a nun in a habit. It was very
- curious how it seemed to be studying me. At first I didn't
- know what to think; was it some astral demon? Some kind of astral plane
- creature? Then I felt myself losing grip of the lockmold, and the scene
- of my room and the floating creature faded out slowly. I laid there
- feeling my body on the bed thinking "damn, too much physical." Could
- hear noises outside, etc.... "
-
- Note: Number 3 here is a very good example:
- 3>
- "...Was back on my bed, conscious, and I wanted to project again. Went
- up and out of my body, flew through the ceiling, and then through another
- ceiling, but was back in my body. Jumped out again, and was standing
- in my room, but my lockmold was very shaky. There seemed to be another
- window in my room, one that didn't exist on the physical plane. I
- jumped through this window and seemed to be in a restaurant. At least
- that is what it sounded like. My lockmold was very shakey and I could
- not see at all, I could only hear. My vision blinked on long enough for
- me to see that there was another window in front of me, and I could sense
- that outside this window was immense, as if the room I was presently
- in was way up in the sky, and if I were to look out the window, I would
- only see the vastness of the sky all around me. I thought that I was
- where dead people are, and for some reason, the association was made
- between "heaven" and the "sky". My vision was gone again, but I jumped
- out the window anyway. I got the impression, from the sounds around me,
- that I was in an outdoor mall or bazaar. I heard all kinds of things
- going on, people selling stuff, conversations, etc.. I thought, "I'm
- in a mall in the sky". This whole time I had been clinging to the window
- ledge being afraid of the height. For a moment my vision locked on
- and I saw stalls with goods floating everywhere and no ground at all
- around me. I remembered that I could fly, so I let go of the ledge and
- jumped forward. I fell down about 30 feet and just floated there. My
- vision was gone again, but I heard people who seemed to be a able to
- see me, and they were laughing at me as if I was behaving in an
- unusual way. I stumbled to pull myself back to the wall I had just
- jumped from. I found the ledge and sat there blind, but I distinctly
- heard a radio playing and I listened to a commercial on the radio.
- Then I lost my lockmold and was back in my body...."
-
-
- So, these above three examples give you some idea of what a lockmold
- is. You will see this idea of the lockmold feeling expressed in
- every personal account of my projections I describe for you. So,
- by no means have you heard the last about lockmolds!
-
- At this point however, that about wraps up my presentation of this
- radio station theory of consciousness I use to think of my own
- projections. To summarize, the important points about this idea are:
-
- 1. Like tuning into a radio station, the subplanes are "stations"
- that you can tune into with your consciousness.
-
- 2. The void is like the static that exists between radio stations,
- and when you tune into the void, you perceive nothing at
- all outside of you.
-
- 3. Your lockmold is the feeling you get of how well you are
- tuned into wherever you are at in your projection.
-
-
-
- 5. Mystical view of consciousness
-
- Finally, I want to end the introductory theory section of these notes
- with what I believe are ideas to tie all the stuff I said above together.
-
- As you see, we can take any number of views of the projection experience.
- You can debate the relative merit of any of these views till you are
- blue in the face. It should be apparent that I discourage such
- semantic arguing, but at the same time I strongly advocate that you
- be as familiar with as many viewpoints as you can, again, not
- only about astral projecting, but about everything in life.
-
- Now, I've already stated that, even though astral projecting is an
- extremely dramatic experience within the context of our society's accepted
- ideas about reality, compared to learning how to be in touch with
- the buddhic plane, astral projection is nothing. In other words,
- astral projecting is not the end all be all of life. Bringing buddhic
- plane energies into your life *IS* the end all be all of life.
-
- There is another member of the New Age forum who is an excellent
- astral projector, and that is Jeff Wiley, the section leader of
- section 13 (DREAMS) and Jeff has a philosophy that he and I both share,
- which kind of sets a bottom line to what all this astral projection stuff
- means. Most people make the distinction that, in some sense, their
- physical life is real, but their dream life is not real. Learning to
- astral project blows this idea right out the door. But even more
- importantly, once you start to project, you realize that, in some
- sense, your dream/projection life is equal to your waking physical
- life. Then, a new insight kind of hits you. And that is, all of our
- conscious experience is more like dreaming than not. Our physical life
- is actually a strange kind of dream, that, like all dreams, is destined
- to end one day. What becomes apparent when you've expanded the horizons
- of your personal experience enough is that THERE IS JUST CONSCIOUSNESS.
- It really doesn't matter what form the consciousness takes, or what plane
- the consciousness manifests on. Such things are merely relative. The
- absolute in life is CONSCIOUSNESS: mine, yours, a tree's, a dog's, a
- planet's, a god's - all just consciousness.
-
- It kind of comes down to the old cliche "life's a dream". What you are
- really looking for here is experiences that can catalyze in you a
- transformation - a transformation of attitudes, of your outlook, of
- your perceptions of yourself and life; a transformation that will bring
- you to the conscious knowledge of your place in the scheme of things. I
- call this "opening up to the buddhic plane", Jeff calls this "realizing
- the Big Dream". In either case it's the same thing. And it is definately
- where you should set your sights.
-
- ----------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 3
- ----------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_04.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 4 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- HOW TO ASTRAL PROJECT - PART 1
-
-
-
- 1. USING DREAMS AS A SPRINGBOARD FOR ASTRAL PROJECTING
-
- Well, we've gone through the theory, now it's time to get to the
- practice. The $10,000 question is: how do you astral project?
- There are two main methods I will discuss: 1. becoming lucid in a
- dream, and 2. by putting yourself into a trance. We will discuss
- each of these methods in some detail because these are the methods I
- have used successfully time and time again. There is also a third
- method you will find which I will mention, though I do not use this
- method. This third method involves visualization excercises. We will
- discuss dream methods first, trance methods second, and then end this
- section with a discussion of visualization methods. Also, I will
- mention briefly tapes and other devices that people use to achieve OOBEs.
-
- Before getting to specific methods, I want to lay out one important
- thing that you should do:
-
- *-------> KEEP A JOURNAL! <--------*
-
- This is *very* important. You want to keep some kind of concrete
- record of all of your experiences with altered states of consciousness.
- Why? Because it is very easy to forget the details of these experiences.
- You may think you will remember something, but, just as is the case
- with our normal dreams, you will forget as time goes on. If you have a
- record of your experiences you can always refer back to it at any time.
- I'm not kidding either; it's very easy to forget the details of specific
- projections. Even now I will recount an old projection to someone, then
- go look the actual entry up in my journal and realize I have forgotten
- important parts of the projection or have confused two different
- projections.
-
- Another reason for keeping records of your experiences is that, as
- these records accumulate over time, you can go back periodically
- and read through them. What you may then discover are similarities
- and regularities in your experiences that you may not have
- found otherwise. For example, after I had been projecting for
- a few months I read over my journal and discovered a recurring
- pattern in my projections. What I discovered is that, often, I
- would attempt to fly in my projection but, once I would start
- to ascend, my way would be blocked by tree branches. Now, this
- didn't happen all the time, only once in a while. It occurred
- infrequently enough that I didn't realize that it was a pattern.
- It was only by looking at my accumulated records over a period
- of about 6 months that I realized this was occurring often enough that
- it might mean something. And mean something it did. I have since
- come to realize that these tree branches blocking me from flying
- away were a message from my subconscious mind. Every time this occurred
- in my projections - the trees preventing me from flying - it was a
- symbol of a serious defect in my personality. It took me some time
- to figure this symbolism out, but once I did I started working on this
- problem. And over time, as I've overcome this problem in my
- personality, I have not been plagued by the occurrence of trees
- blocking me from flying in my projections.
-
- So, not only is the above an example of why you should keep good records,
- but it's also an example of what I said earlier about how your personality
- appears to be *outside* of you during a projection and how projections
- are a form of self-therapy.
-
- Back to note keeping: In my case, for a long time I simply kept a
- notebook close to my bed. Everytime I had a projection the very first
- thing I would do when I returned here to the physical plane is write
- down as much as I could remember of my projection. The entries I've
- made have been as long as 10 pages (in the case where I remembered
- the projection well), or may have only been a quick outline of notes
- that I later (usually the same day) went back and filled in. Sometimes,
- I have gone one or two days before recording the experience, but I
- don't recommend this. I've also made notes on whatever scrap paper
- was available to me. Eventually, I've transfered all my notes to the
- computer. Now I keep my astral projection journal through my word
- processor. But still, I often write it down on paper before typing it
- into the computer. The bottom line is to do whatever is convenient for
- you, but definately keep records of your expereinces!
-
- Keeping a journal takes discipline. Astral projecting, just like any
- other skill, requires discipline, and keeping good notes is a part of
- the discipline you need to be succesful.
-
- Another thing I want to say at the begining of this section on methods
- is that astral projection is a SKILL. As such it is like any other
- skill that humans have; some people pick it up easily, others do not.
- I like to draw the analogy between learning to astral project and
- learning to play a musical instrument. Some people are born with
- the talent to play a musical instrument. A very few people are born
- musical geniuses. For most of us, however, the only way to learn a
- musical instrument is by *practice*. And for those of us who have to
- practice, our learning may come easily or it may only come with much
- work and dedication. Well, learning to astral project is the exact same
- thing. A very few people are born with the talent to astral project.
- For some, the learning process comes easily. For most of us, learning
- to astral project requires work and effort. THERE IS NOTHING MAGICAL
- ABOUT LEARNING TO ASTRAL PROJECT. Like anything else, you need to
- learn the right theory, the right techniques and PRACTICE them. And
- like anything else in life, you get out of it what you put into it.
- The more you practice, the more you attempt to learn, the better you
- will be.
-
- And, unlike other skills we learn here in the physical world, such
- as the example I gave for learning to play a musical instrument,
- the factors that underlie your ability to project are primarily
- *psychological*. Factors such as intelligence, personality,
- emotional make-up, social upbringing, and your belief system are all
- going to be determinants in how hard or how easy it is for you to
- project. So, for example, you don't really have to change your beliefs
- to learn to play an instrument or to learn to play baseball. However,
- when you learn to astral project, your beliefs are critical. If
- you hold certain beliefs it will be impossible for you to astral project
- (i.e. if you are a totally cynical materialist). Other beliefs could
- potentially lead you to harm when you learn to astral project (i.e.
- if you are a staunch Christian who believes in Hell - you just
- might find yourself in Hell during a projection and scare the ****
- out of yourself!). So, this is just another way to say what I
- said earlier; when you learn to astral project, you are embarking
- on a journey of *self-transformation* to some extent or another.
-
- Now, there is no easy way to determine if you are a person to whom
- astral projection comes easily or if you are the kind of person who
- has to work hard at achieving a projection. At the very end of these
- notes I will discuss how you can use astrology to determine your
- propensity towards having an OOBE. But these astrological methods of
- determing how likely you are to have a projection are only indicators.
- And furthermore, these astrological methods are limited by the
- accuracy of astrology, and in particular by the accuracy of the
- interpretation of your chart (reading charts isn't easy to start with,
- let alone using a chart to determine if you can astral project
- or not.) Even if your chart predicts that it would be easy for you
- to project, this is still no substitute for learning the right
- methods and for honest practice and work. So, until you can prove
- otherwise, it's best not to glamorize your potential skills at
- astral projection. It's best just to assume that, as an average person,
- you will have to put some work and effort into your attempts to
- astral project.
-
- So, this said, let's get into the "how to" of astral projection.
-
- I suppose it takes some of the mystique and excitement out of astral
- projecting when we realize that we very instinctively, and *unconsciously*
- astral project all the time. Except in this case we don't call the
- activity "astral projecting". What I am referring to, of course, is the
- very common process that we call "dreaming". As I said above, DREAMS
- AND ASTRAL PROJECTIONS ARE VERY CLOSELY RELATED. In a nutshell,
- dreams are UNCONSCIOUS (or you could say "instinctive") astral
- projections, and astral projections are CONSCIOUS dreams. Let us now
- explore this notion in detail.
-
- Every one of us dreams every night. We may not remember our dreams
- the following morning, but this does not mean that we did not dream.
- You can take it for granted that you dream at night, whether you
- remember it or not.
-
- When I discussed theory above, I said a couple of things about dreams.
- First I said that psychologists do not have a good explanation of what
- dreams are. It was also stated that occultists claim that the act of
- dreaming is a transfer of our consciousness from the physical plane
- to the astral plane. The bottom line is, NO ONE KNOWS FOR SURE WHAT
- DREAMS ARE. But the nice thing about this is that it doesn't matter if
- no one knows what dreams are, because we EXPERIENCE dreams for our-
- selves. So, we can explore and study our own dreams directly, and
- from these explorations come to our own conclusions about what our
- dreams are are not.
-
- Now, part of the problem is attitude. In our society in general
- dreams aren't given much credence. We generally associate dreams
- with fantasy and unreality. We definately do NOT take dreams as
- seriously as our physical waking life. Or, if we do take dreams
- seriously it's usually at the level of those dream interpretation
- books you see in the supermarket checkout lines which provide
- you with pat, simple-minded explanations of what your dreams mean.
-
- On more "intellectual" levels, we run into Freudian or Jungian-based ideas,
- nebulous ideas that do little to address the concrete fact that
- we all dream. These types of ideas, that focus on the symbolism
- or meaning of dreams, important though these views are in some respects,
- implicitly deny the concrete reality of the fact that our dreams
- are real experiences that happen to our consciousness. It's ironic
- when you think about it. Our society, with its physical sciences,
- has incredible knowledge and control over the physical forces of
- Nature (albeit a tenuous and perhaps deluded sense of control), yet,
- with our practical and literal mentalilty, we don't take the fact
- that we dream literally. Dreams, are "symbolic", "subjective",
- "psychological", which implies they are not real, not objective events.
-
- So, right from the start we pretty much have built into us by our
- very society a bad attitude about our dream experiences. Since
- society as a whole doesn't take dreams too seriously this creates
- a situation where we are, basically, completely ignorant of the nature
- of our dream experience. Thus, the first thing you, as a potential astral
- projector, need to do is to CHANGE YOUR IDEAS AND ATTITUDES ABOUT
- WHAT YOUR DREAMS ARE.
-
- Consider this: When you dream, *you* are *somewhere* doing *something*.
- Right? Wherever you are when you dream, you definately EXIST, right?
- Things are going on in your dreams: you are doing things, interacting
- with other people, being involved in situations, etc. So, to say dreams
- aren't real flys right in the face of your direct experience. For, when
- you dream, you are experiencing *something*. What you have to realize
- is that YOUR DREAMS ARE REAL EXPERIENCES OF YOUR CONSCIOUSNESS.
-
- Basically, we all live a dichotomous life. We live two lives. One life
- we live here in the physical plane. The second life we live in the world
- where our dreams occur. They are both REAL. They are very different from
- each other, but each life is totally and completely real IN ITS OWN
- TERMS. See, the problem with how we look at our dream life stems from the
- fact that we try to interpret it in terms of our physical life.
-
- Our physical life has certain characteristics, the most basic and
- important of which is our experience of SPACE and TIME. Both space
- and time have very definite properties in our normal waking life, and
- our entire mind and perception are conditioned by the properties of
- space and time as we know them here in the physical world. For
- example, we cannot see around a corner here in the physical world.
- Nor can we go backwards in time. Time is an overpowering factor in
- our waking experience. We were all born, we are all aging, and we shall
- all grow old and die; Time. These things are so fundamental, we take
- them completely for granted.
-
- Now, given how fundamental time and space are, and given the fact that
- we take time and space so for granted, what we do then is interpret
- our dreams in terms of our physical experience with space and time. And
- of course, as each and everyone of us knows FROM OUR DIRECT EXPERIENCE,
- our dreams make no sense whatsoever if we think of them in terms of our
- experiences here in the physical world. So, the normal "knee jerk"
- reaction is to conclude that dreams are NOT real, since, obviously,
- our physical experience IS real.
-
- Well, this attitude assumes too much and takes way too much for granted.
- Isn't it completely possible that there is a logic to our experience
- in the world of dreams, a logic of its own that could be DIFFERENT
- from our physical waking experience? Could it be that, in the world
- of dreams, space and time behave DIFFERENTLY than they do here in the
- physical world? Could it be, perhaps, that the place where dreams
- occur is indeed a world of its own, a completely natural world with its
- own laws of space and time?
-
- Such thinking takes us right back to the occult idea of the planes. The
- astral plane is the world in which dreams occur, and it is a world
- DIFFERENT from this physical world, which operates according to
- laws of Nature different from (but related to) the laws of Nature that
- operate here on the physical plane. I do not want to go off on this
- too deeply. What I am trying to do here is to expose attitudes that
- we all possess and take for granted. The bottom line of what I'm
- getting at is trying to help you, the reader, realize that it IS very
- possible to think of your dreams as objective experiences occurring
- somewhere. Whether you buy into occult ideas or not doesn't matter.
- What matters is that you start to take your dreams seriously, that
- you begin to appreciate that, when you dream, YOU ARE HAVING EXPERIENCES
- THAT ARE JUST AS REAL AS YOUR EXPERIENCES HERE IN THE PHYSICAL WORLD.
-
- This last statement you need to internalize, especially to be able
- to see the intimate connection between your dreams and your astral
- projections.
-
- So, whether you want to believe that your dreams are experiences just
- as real as your experience of reading these words or not, I'm going to
- have to assume you will at least pretend for the time being that this is
- the case so I can go on with the discussion.
-
- Having established that our dreams are real and objective experiences
- like our physical experiences, we need to look closely at the
- relationship between these dual lives that we all live. Let's now
- look at some facts about dreaming.
-
- There are two facts that we need to consider, and each of these is
- something we have directly experienced. Most importantly,
- we will see that the key here is memory.
-
- First fact: we do not, as a rule, remember our dreams as well as we
- remember our physical experiences.
-
- Second fact: When we are dreaming we generally do not remember the
- facts of our physical life, nor do we even realize we are dreaming and
- that we even live a physical life.
-
- Both of these are absolutely true. I have experienced this, and so have
- you, as has every other human on this planet. These are both very common
- facts about our existence. What we need to ask is: What do these
- facts *mean*?
-
- First off, these two facts are two of the main reasons we don't
- treat our dream life as being equal to our waking life. There is no
- *continuity* between our dream and waking lives. For the average
- person, the dream and waking lives are mostly separate from each other.
- Sure, one may dream of events which occurred when awake, and even
- rarer, one may remember dream events that are relevant to one's waking
- life (such as deja vu for example, or maybe a dream premonition).
- Generally speaking though, this discontinuity between our dream and
- waking life is the main thing that prevents our physical pesonality
- from IDENTIFYING with his or her dream personality.
-
- We can look at these two facts from another angle though, and that is
- in terms of the relationship between our waking and dream selves. What
- is the one thing that can relate our waking personality with our dream
- personality? That thing is MEMORY. Memory is all important in this
- astral projection buisness. As far as I have discovered to this point
- THE ONLY THING YOU CAN TAKE BACK AND FORTH BETWEEN THE PHYSICAL AND
- NONPHYSICAL WORLDS IS YOUR MEMORY.
-
- Look at those two facts I listed above. What do they have in common?
- Memory. We cannot remember our dream experiences when we are here in
- the physical world, nor do we remember our physical experiences when
- we are in the dream world. Learning to astral project will change all
- this for you. Here now is a very functional definition of what
- astral projection *really* is: ASTRAL PROJECTION IS A CONTINUITY OF
- MEMORY BETWEEN YOUR WAKING AND DREAM PERSONALITIES.
-
- This is a big time practical statement, folks! If you come to learn the
- truth of this statement by direct experience, then you *will* be a
- bona fide astral projector!
-
- Now, for the first time in these notes we are ready to define what an
- astral projection is. It is a dream, but AN ASTRAL PROJECTION IS A
- DREAM IN WHICH YOU ARE FULLY AWARE OF YOUR WAKING LIFE. See, the
- term "lucid dream" normally refers to a dream in which you are aware
- that you are dreaming. Well, this is fine and all, but realizing
- that you are dreaming doesn't mean you realize your self-identity to
- the same extent you do while you are awake. In a full-scale projection
- experience, your self-identity in the projection is identical to your
- self-identity when awake here in the physical world. This is what
- I am trying to teach you how to achieve here: how to take your waking
- identity into the world where dreams occur. You can call this an
- OOBE if you want, or an astral projection, or a lucid dream. I don't
- care what you call it, I only care that you understand what it is
- you are trying to do. And again WHAT YOU ARE TRYING TO DO IS TAKE
- YOUR WAKING MIND INTO THE DREAM WORLD.
-
- With this understanding you are now in a position to realize
- that THERE IS A SPECTRUM OF AWARENESS BETWEEN DREAMS AND ASTRAL
- PROJECTIONS. An astral projection is NOT a cut and dry thing.
- It is NOT a thing completely different from dreaming. Dreams
- bleed imperceptibly into astral projections. The criteria to determine
- if your experience is more a dream or more an astral projection is:
- to what extent have you brought your waking identity into the dream
- world? You can do this more or less. For me personally, I have
- conditioned myself to recognize when I am in the dream world.
- Once I recognize I am in the dream world, then I consider myself
- "lucid", and I record the experience in my astral projection
- journal. That is to say, I draw the line between my dreams
- and my astral projections when I consciously recognize I am
- in the dream world during a dream. Rarely, I may not even remember my
- name, but if I remember that I'm "in that place again", then that is
- my criteria to say I have had a projection (or OOBE or whatever
- you want to call it).
-
- When I project, I remember very cleary who I am in THIS physical world.
- I recognize that it is me, Don, but I realize to some extent or another
- that Don is no longer in the physical world. I realize that I am in
- some other world. To be absolutely honest with all of you, when I
- am in a projection I am completely amazed. That is the main thing I
- feel while projecting: amazement. I'm amazed that I am me, but I am
- not in the familiar world I know. I stand there (or float, or fly) and
- often, with intense curiosity just wonder where the hell I am at.
- It is my curiosity about where I am at that drives my behavior in
- my astral projections (most of the time at least). I will wander
- about and explore my environment. I will talk to the people I meet and
- ask them questions. If I see books I will try to read them (reading
- is actually very difficult for me in a projection). I will study where I
- am at as closely as I can. That is what I do in projections, and it is
- because it is me, Don, the guy writing these words right now, but I'm
- not in this world - I'm somewhere else. And it just amazes the hell
- out of me.
-
- Also, often in my projections, I remember what I've read in various books
- about astral projection and I'll try to do the things I've read about.
- This is one really important reason for reading as much as you can
- about projecting: it gives you ideas for things to do. In the next
- section I will offer some suggestions of what you can do once you
- are lucid in the dream world.
-
- To tie all this together at this point, what you are trying to
- accomplish is to take your waking personality into your dreams.
- What this means is you want to build bridges between your
- waking and dream personalities. Basically, anything that will help you
- strengthen the connection between your waking personality and your
- dream personality will help you become an astral projector. And, as
- this section of the notes is entitled "Using Dreams As A Springboard
- To Astral Projecting", let's now look at what you can do in this regard.
-
- Basically, all of your efforts will start with your physical personality.
- That is, YOU, the person reading these words, has to make the effort to
- break down the barrier that currently exists between you and the other you
- that lives in the dream world when the waking you sleeps. There is really
- only one being underlying these two lives, and that being is the
- greater "you" in which the waking and dream personalities dwell.
-
- THINGS YOU CAN DO:
-
- 1. Remember your dreams.
-
- This is really an important first step. You might want to keep a
- dream journal (as distinct from keeping an astral projection journal)
- just because of the simple fact that writting dreams down will help
- you remember them better.
-
- Another excersise to do is this: when you wake up in the morning, before
- you do anything at all, just lay there in bed, relax and try to remember
- as much as you can about your dreams from that night. Block out
- any other thoughts that come into your mind. Often when you wake up
- you immediately start thinking about what you are going to do that day.
- Well, don't do that. Block those thoughts out. Instead, just relax
- and concentrate on your dreams. Usually when we wake up we have at least
- a trace of rememberance of that night's dreams. If you just relax and
- focus on what little you do remember, you'll be surprised to discover
- that automatically you will begin to recall other parts of the dream.
-
- Both of these exercises will help strengthen the memory connection
- between your waking and dream personalities. This is very important,
- for when you start projecting, it is critical that you remember what
- you did during the projection once you return here to the physical plane.
- It's no good if you project, but forget all about your projection
- once your consciousness is back in the physical plane. If this happens,
- you've basically wasted your time. Take my word for it, it is very
- easy to forget your projections once you have returned back here to the
- physical world. It has happened to me a number of times.
-
- Above I said that once you return from a projection you will want
- to record what happened to you during the projection. Well, the all-
- important prelude to recording your projections is remembering them.
- If you don't remember your projections, you cannot write them down.
- Once you start projecting, not only do you want to get in the habit
- of recording your experiences, you also want to get into the habit
- of trying to remember your projection as completely as possible
- once you return to the physical plane.
-
- What will happen is that the end of your projection will be marked
- by you returning to your body. You will know you have returned to
- your body because you will feel your body lying in bed, or however
- your body happens to be situated. Once you feel yourself back in your
- body, the absolute first thing you want to do is exactly what I said to
- do when you wake up in the morning: relax and try to remember as much
- as you can about what occurred during the projection. This may take up to
- 5 minutes. Then, once you've remembered as much as you can, you
- will want to get right up and write down everything you remember.
- And again, just like with dreaming, if you take these first few moments
- to relax and try remembering your astral projection, you will be amazed
- at how easily you can remember what happened to you. The details
- of the projection will just pour into your mind. But you have to allow
- this to happen. If you just wake right up and make no attempt to
- remember, then chances are very good that you will forget many things
- that you could have otherwise remembered easily. Again, this is
- necessary disipline for being sucessful with astral projecting.
-
- I really want to stress how easy it is to forget your projections once
- you've returned here to the physical world. Over time, as I became
- better at projecting, and after having completely forgotten a few
- really good projections almost upon waking, I actually got into the
- habit of remembering my projection while I was still in it! There
- have been a number of times when I was projecting that I would
- just sit in the projection and make a mental note of everything
- that had happened to me up to that point in the projection with the
- explicit purpose of remembering it once I was back in the physical.
- I have even had projections where I literally wrote down what was
- happening to me during the projection! I'm serious about this; I
- would find paper and pencil in the dream world and write down what
- was happening to me right in the middle of my projection! Needless
- to say, making such effort to remember my projection while I am
- actually in it makes it easier to remember once I am back here in
- the physical world.
-
- So, this is something you may want to try once you find yourself
- lucid in the dream world: make very clear mental notes to yourself
- of what is happening to you with the explicit purpose of recording
- this information once you return here to the physical plane.
-
-
-
- 2. Self-conditioning excercises.
-
- There are other excercises you can do to strenghthen the memory
- connection between your dream and waking self. I will now discuss
- what I call "self-conditioning" excercises. These are very important
- and form the basic technique for becoming lucid in a dream. What
- I am about to say now are the common ideas you will find in
- technique books about astral projection (e.g., see Rogo, Ophiel,
- and Fox in the bibilography) for using dreams as a means to
- astral project.
-
- "Self-conditioning excercise" means you are to plant suggestions
- in your mind. The idea is that if you keep telling yourself these
- things long enough, then they will happen. There are two suggestions
- you want to convince yourself of:
-
- 1. You *will* become lucid in a dream.
- 2. You will find clues in the dream itself to trigger off your
- lucidity.
-
- Let's discuss each of these in turn.
-
- You must convince yourself that you will project. Only in rare
- cases will a person spontaneously project. For most of us, it
- requires a strong desire to want to achieve the projection
- experience for it to happen. In Rogo's book "Leaving the Body"
- he calls this the "Desire Method", and bases this method
- on ideas described in another astral projection book by a
- Frenchman named Yram. What this method entails is constantly
- desiring to astral project. You want to think about projecting
- as much as possible during your waking hours. You want to tell
- yourself such things as, "I *will* project", "I am going to learn
- how to project", etc. And what's more, you can't just say these
- things to yourself half-heartedly, you have to really work yourself
- up into believing these statements. You have to develop an almost
- stubborn persistence that, come hell or high water, you *will*
- project.
-
- There are two things you are doing here. First, you are admitting
- to yourself that astral projection is a real thing. This is very
- important because any scepticism you have will only prevent you
- from projecting. By telling yourself that astral projecting *is*
- possible and that you *will* do it, you are opening up the possibility
- in your mind. Like anything else, you have to believe a thing
- is possible to do it.
-
- The other thing you are doing here is mustering up the power of
- desire. As we all know, when we truly desire a thing, we obtain
- it much more readily than the things we don't care about. Desire is
- a very strong power in human affairs. Occultism teaches how to control
- desire to achieve your ends (this is also an important part of
- ritual magic). What you are doing by building up the desire to
- astral project is putting the power of desire behind your efforts.
- In a sense this is like a booster rocket on a space ship. Desire
- adds extra power to your attempts to project. Desiring
- to really achieve a projection can make the difference between
- being successful or being unsuccessful in your attempts to project.
-
- I know the truth of this from personal experience. In my own case,
- during the times I have projected the most frequently, I had an almost
- one track mind. All I would think about was projecting. During the day
- I would read as many books as I could find about projecting and
- just desire more than anything else in the world to project. As I would
- go off to sleep at night (or when I would take a nap during the day)
- I would think about nothing but desiring to leave my body as I fell
- off to sleep. I hate to say it, but you just won't be able to astral
- project if you have a half-ass attitude about it. Astral projecting
- is not achieved by the half-hearted or the casual. Along with practicing
- the right exercises and developing the right attitudes and understanding,
- you have to *really* want to achieve the experience.
-
- I can say with much certainty that the stronger your will to achieve
- a projection, the more likely you will actually project.
-
- Now, let's consider the second suggestion you want to plant in your mind:
-
- You will find clues in the dream itself to trigger off your lucidity.
-
- This is the heart and soul of using dreams as a means to astral
- project. Again, this idea is taught in many books that explain how to
- astral project. The essence of this idea is as follows. We all know
- that things occur in dreams that are absolutely impossible in our
- waking life. It could be anything: maybe in your dream you know some-
- one who you do not know in physical life. Maybe you are in a familiar
- environment in your dream, but things are out of place. For example,
- you may be in your house in your dream, but the furniture is different
- in the dream, or there is something obviously different about your house
- in your dream. Or it may be something even more spectacular. Maybe
- in your dream you are seeing animals fly - or even talk! Or you are
- seeing something occur in your dream that is simply impossible as
- far as physical life goes.
-
- Now, here's the trick:
-
- YOU WANT TO CONDITION YOURSELF SUCH THAT, WHEN YOU SEE ODD THINGS
- OCCURRING IN DREAMS, YOU WILL USE THESE ODD CIRCUMSTANCES AS A
- TRIGGER TO TELL YOU THAT YOU ARE IN THE DREAM WORLD.
-
- Again, you have to think of your normal dreams and the fact that
- in your normal dreams, these odd circumstances usually do not
- even phase you. You need to begin by *remembering*
- these odd occurrences from your dreams. I'm sure all of you can
- think of something odd you saw in a dream that didn't phase you
- at all. As you remember such weird dream events, think to yourself,
- "the next time I see something like that happening in a dream, I
- will become aware that I am dreaming". If you work on this over and
- over, eventually it will happen: you will be in a dream, see something
- weird that could never happen in your waking life, and all of a sudden
- realize that you are dreaming.
-
- When this actually happens, it is possible that you may actually *feel*
- something happen to you in the dream. For example, we all know the
- feeling you get when you have been sitting in a chair for a long time
- and then quickly get up. You experience a "headrush", where your skin
- becomes tingly, your vision may even disappear for an instant, and you
- hear a whoshing sound in your ears. On many occasions, when I have
- become lucid during a dream, I feel this exact sensation. I don't have
- the slightest idea why this happens, but it happens to me fairly
- regularly.
-
- Another thing that may happen the first few times you recognize that
- you are in a dream is that you might wake up! You will see something
- weird going on in your dream, this will trigger you to become lucid,
- and all of a sudden you are awake lying in your bed! If this happens,
- don't become discouraged. This is very likely to occur to most of you.
- It is not bad when this happens, it is good. It is a sure-fire sign
- that you had your waking mind in the dream world, even if it was
- only for an instant. I have discovered that it is like a balancing
- act keeping your waking mind in the dream world. In a sense, your
- waking mind is "heavier" than your dream mind. I don't know how
- else to say this so just bear with me. Your dream mind is much more
- nimble at being in the dream world, which only makes sense. When you
- take your waking mind into the dream world, it is like trying to
- balance a quarter on the head of a pin. The slightest disturbance
- can cause your waking consciousness to fade out of the dream world.
- It will take some practice to get used to having your waking mind
- in the dream world. I mentioned lockmolds above, and this is
- what the lockmold is all about; keeping the right balance that
- allows your waking mind to stay in the dream world for any amount of
- time.
-
- Finally, it is very possible that the first time you become lucid
- in a dream (i.e. bring your waking mind into the dream world)
- that you will be perfectly stable. In this case YOU'RE THERE!!
- You made it! You are astral projecting. What to do at this
- point will be the subject of the next main section of these notes.
-
- So, to wrap up this section on using dreams as a springboard
- for astral projecting, I will summarize the key points of this section
- and as well assign you specific exercises to do.
-
- In summary, these are the key points of this section:
-
- A. You have to change your ideas about what your dreams are.
- You have to learn to accept dreams as a real and valid part
- of your experience as a living being.
-
- B. You need to start a journal of your experiences. If you want
- to have one journal for recording both dreams and astral
- projections, that is fine. If you want a separate journal
- for each, that is fine too. What ever you decide, you have
- to start writing down your experiences in the dream world.
-
- C. You have to appreciate that dreams and astral projections
- form a continous spectrum of states of consciousness. A dream
- is when you are oblivious to your life here in the physical
- plane, an astral projection is a dream in which you are highly
- conscious of your life here in the physical plane. Your consciousness
- can be anywhere between these two extremes in actual practice.
-
- D. You need to strenthen your ability to remember what happens to
- you during dreams. This means you have to use your memory as a BRIDGE
- between your waking and dreaming experiences.
-
- E. The more desire you have to project, the more likely it is that
- you *will* project.
-
- F. You want to condition yourself to recognize when you are dreaming.
- This is most easily accomplished using the strange and weird events
- that occur in dreams as a trigger to becoming aware that you are in
- the dream world.
-
- Finally, to end this section, here is a list of exercises:
-
- 1. When you wake up in the morning, before you think of anything
- else, try to remember as much about your dreams as you can.
-
- 2. Write down everything you remember about your dreams.
-
- 3. Write down a list of all the weird things you've seen happen in
- your dreams. (Not necessarily based on what you do for exercises 1
- and 2, but write down *any* weird dream occurrences you remember.
- Don't forget, any "weird" dream occurrence is something that cannot
- happen, or is different from the way things are, in your physical life).
-
- 4. Throughout the day, stop and be aware of yourself. Think of who you
- are, where you live, and where you are at (i.e. home, school, work, etc.).
- When you do this, tell yourself you are going to do the exact same
- thing when you are dreaming. Do this as often as you can throughout the
- day.
-
- 5. When you go to sleep at night, meditate on the following thought:
- "Tonight I will become aware that I am dreaming while I am dreaming.
- If I see anything weird happening in my dreams, then I will become
- aware that I am dreaming".
-
- If you do these exercises, as well as the other exercises mentioned
- throughout the text, you will greatly enhance your chances
- of having an OOBE.
-
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 4
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_05.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 5 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- HOW TO ASTRAL PROJECT - PART 2
-
- 2. TRANCE METHODS
-
-
- We have seen how to use dreams as a means for achieving an
- astral projection. However, we have so ingrained our prejudice about
- the unreality of dreams, that simply taking your waking mind into
- the dream world somehow doesn't seem like all that big a deal, even
- given the fact that very few people actually do this. Becoming
- lucid during a dream just doesn't seem like the "real thing" to
- most people in terms of being a bona fide OOBE or astral
- projection. Well, I will continue to hammer home the point
- that it is; becoming lucid while dreaming is indistinguishable
- from other ways of getting your waking mind into the dream world.
- Still, it would be even more convincing that we were having a
- "real" astral projection/OOBE if there was some way that we could
- directly take our consciousness out of the physical plane without
- having to use dreams as an intermediary device. Well, happily
- there is such a direct method for getting to the inner planes,
- and this is a method I have used the most to achieve my astral projection
- experiences. For lack of a better term, I call this the
- "trance method", for it entails putting yourself into a trance.
-
- Now, what is a trance? Frankly, I'm not sure if there is a precise
- definition of what a trance is. I know for sure that a trance is a
- state of consciousness in which you are no longer focused in the
- physical world. I know that you can achieve trance states through
- hypnosis and meditation, and the method I shall describe here is much
- like meditation. Knowing exactly what a trance is isn't
- very important for our purposes here. What is important for our
- purposes here is learning how to put yourself in a trance, which we
- shall discuss below.
-
- Now, how is going into a projection from a trance different from
- going into a projection through a dream? Well, the difference is
- that, going into a projection through a trance is much more direct
- than going into a projection through a dream. By "direct" I mean
- that you do not fall asleep first. Your consciousness remains
- intact as you cross the border into the nonphysical planes. Thus,
- the immediate perception on your part will be of "leaving your body".
- You will be highly conscious of the act of dissociating from your
- physical body as you take your waking consciousness into the
- dream world. Once you are there, you will see that the experience
- is very much like the experience of being lucid in a dream, but it's the
- "getting there" that is different.
-
- In the previous section we saw the connection between astral projections
- and lucid dreams. Becoming lucid in a dream - which again, means
- taking your waking mind into the dream state - is, essentially
- an astral projection. Likewise, in this section you will now
- appreciate the connection between the term OOBE and astral
- projection. Again, this is because when you enter the projection
- state via trance, you literally feel yourself leave your body. The
- more precise way to say this is that you feel your consciousness
- *dissociate* from your physical body. I suspect that such a perception
- is more in line with people's ideas about what an OOBE is. So,
- recalling what was said back in the section on theory, the difference
- between calling your trance-induced projection an "OOBE" or an "astral
- projection" implies mostly your conception of where you go after
- you "leave" your body. Remember, generally the term OOBE seems to imply
- that you are still in the physical world as a disembodied awareness,
- whereas the term astral projection implies you are in one of the
- nonphysical planes. When you learn to project via trance, you
- will be in a good position to see that your consciousness is no
- longer in the physical world. So, if we wanted to be proper about this
- we should call our experience an astral projection. But again, what
- you call it doesn't matter. What matters is that you can DO it.
-
- Now, let us return to this idea that the trance method allows
- a continuity of your awareness across the border from the physical
- to the nonphysical planes. In my experiences with entering a
- projection through a trance, I have encountered one of two things
- happening to my consciousness - either: 1. there is no break in my
- consciousness and I directly enter into the projection experience,
- or 2. there is a momentary break in my consciousness, lasting only a
- split second, and then I am in the projection. In either case, the
- transition is very direct, unlike the dream method where you may be
- asleep for hours before becoming lucid. In the trance method you
- pretty much go directly from the physical plane to the projection
- state.
-
- So, for starters, let me give an overview of the trance process,
- and then we will look at the whole process in great detail and lay
- out exactly what you need to do to project from a trance.
-
- Going into trance starts out just like going to sleep. You lay on
- your bed and relax deeply. However, you do NOT fall asleep. What
- you do to go into a trance is KEEP YOUR MIND AWAKE WHILE YOU LET
- YOUR BODY FALL ASLEEP. We will go into how to do this below. If
- you are successful at keeping your mind awake while your body falls
- asleep, you will feel yourself "slip" or "push" out of your body. At
- that point you will either be somewhere in one of the planes, or you
- will be in the void. In either case, you are astral projecting (or
- having an OOBE - whatever you prefer). You will then go through a
- series of adventures until something causes you to break your trance
- (such as the phone ringing, the need to go to the bathroom, or any
- other number of things). On occasion, while you are projecting, you
- may want to wake yourself up (if for example, you are in a threatening
- or scary situation), and I will also discuss how to do this. So
- that's the big picture from start to finish. Let's discuss each
- step of this process in detail.
-
- A. PUTTING YOURSELF INTO A TRANCE
-
- Ok, you are laying on your bed with the intent to astral project. So
- what do you do now? First off, here are some general considerations
- for the kind of conditions that are best for going into trance:
-
- 1. Make sure you have gone to the bathroom first. If your physical body
- has to clean itself out, this will draw you right out of a projection.
-
- 2. It's best to be a little bit tired. You don't want to be super tired
- because you will just fall asleep! You don't want to be too awake or
- you will never be able to relax enough to go into trance.
-
- 3. Make sure your body is lying comfortably. You don't want your
- arm to fall asleep, or have your neck get sore because of the way
- it is cocked. I have found that if I lay on my back, with my head
- comfortably propped on a couple pillows, and my arms lying stretched
- alongside my body, or wrapped over my chest, that I am fine. You
- will discover as you practice that there is one position that you
- find most comfortable, at least I did.
-
- 4. In general, you want to minimize all distractions. I have found
- that a little bit of noise from outside doesn't prevent me from going
- into trance. On the other hand, a ringing phone has pulled me from
- projections a number of times. Also, make sure your body temperature
- is comfortable.
-
-
- Ok, so now, you are lying in bed, a little tired, you don't have to
- go to the bathroom, it's quiet and you are comfortable, and you want
- to astral project. What next? Just relax. What you have to
- do at this point is begin the process I said above; you have to now
- try to put your body to sleep but at the same time allow your mind
- to stay awake. How do you do this?
-
- Two things are now critical: concentration and relaxation.
- You have to do both of these. You have to just stay relaxed, but,
- as you allow your body to relax, you have to KEEP YOUR MIND ALERT.
- How do you keep your mind alert? Basically, you can think about
- anything you want. Some people will tell you that you need to
- think about specific things, or visualize specific images, and
- you can do this if you want, but you don't have to. All you
- have to do is stay alert.
-
- When I go into trance I don't meditate on anything specific. Instead
- I look into the darkness behind my closed eyes and just stare. I
- tell myself I want to leave my body, not merely just think the idea,
- but really *feel* that I want to leave. At the same time, I allow myself
- to relax.
-
- The most important thing to think about is to stay aware. KEEP YOUR
- MIND FOCUSED ON THE FACT THAT YOU ARE AWARE OF YOURSELF. That
- is what is most critical: stay LUCID. It's because you let go of your
- self-awareness that you eventually just fall asleep and slip
- unconsciously into the dream world. What you want to do is to move
- *consciously* into the dream world. Think about whatever you want, but
- when your mind starts wandering off too far or you start daydreaming
- too much, bring your awareness of yourself back to the front of your mind.
- This is really important because, if you watch yourself fall asleep
- at night, you will notice that your mind just kind of randomly
- starts wandering through thoughts. The thoughts can be about anything:
- what happened to you that day, whatever you are worried about, some-
- one you love, anything. What you will notice going off to sleep is
- that you get lost in your thoughts. Next thing you know, you
- are waking up in the morning with maybe a faint memory of the dreams you
- had as you slept. You DO NOT want to let this happen when you go
- into trance. It's ok to let your mind wander, but constantly keep
- bringing your mind back to an awareness of you laying on the bed trying
- to astral project. IT IS CRITICAL THAT YOU REMAIN SELF-AWARE.
-
- All the while of course, you are continuing to relax. At a
- certain point you may feel your body become heavy, as if you
- are beginning to drop off to sleep. This is OK. As a matter of fact
- this is what you want to happen.
-
- At this point, I want to really go in detail about how I go into
- trance. If not for any other reason, this will be illustrative of
- one particular way to successfully get into trance (i.e. "monkey
- see, monkey do"). You may find what I do works for you, or, as
- you practice, you may discover things that work for you that are
- different than what I do. That's fine. The bottom line here
- is: WHATEVER WORKS.
-
- There are two things I focus on as I go into trance:
-
- 1. I stare into the darkness behind my closed eyes.
- 2. I stay completely aware of the sensation of my body laying on the bed.
-
- What happens when I go into trance is that, as I focus on both of these
- things, as my relaxation deepens, my perception of both of these things
- changes. That is to say, the darkness I am staring into transforms, and
- I will see images in this darkness. And the feeling of my body laying
- on my bed changes too. I now will discuss each of these in detail. Let
- me make this perfectly clear: THE CHANGES IN WHAT I SEE AND HOW
- I FEEL MY BODY ARE WHAT ALLOW ME TO "LEAVE" MY BODY. That is to say,
- as far as I'm concerned, these next couple topics are the heart and
- soul of these notes; how to really "leave" your body.
-
- This is it gang! Pay attention!
-
- As I go through the next few paragraphs, please keep in mind that what I
- am describing is all occurring at the same time. Just to keep it straight,
- all of the following things are going on simultaneously as I go into
- trance:
-
- 1. I am staring into the darkness behind my closed eyes.
- 2. I am aware of the sensations of my body.
- 3. I am relaxing deeper and deeper.
- 4. I am thinking to myself "I am going to leave", "I am going to project",
- and similar thoughts. And I am anticipating certain changes in what
- I see in the darkness behind my closed eyes and how my body feels. I
- am waiting for these changes to occur so that I can "project" or "leave"
- or whatever you want to call it.
-
-
- All this said, let's now discuss the changes in what I see and what I feel
- as I go into trance.
-
-
- i. Hypnogogic Imagery
-
- I stare into the darkness behind my closed eyes. If you stare into
- this darkness you will soon come to see that it's not just a flat
- blackness. Not only is it NOT a black nothing in the darkness behind
- your closed eyes, but if you look closely you will see that there is
- something moving in the darkness behind your closed eyes! What I see
- is what looks like zillions of little pin pricks of electric yellow
- light and these pin pricks seem to be moving in a way that's hard
- to put into words. And the image itself is faint and not easy to
- focus on at all.
-
- I WANT TO MAKE PERFECTLY CLEAR AT THIS POINT THAT WHEN I SAY I "SEE"
- ANYTHING FROM THIS POINT OUT, I AM BEING TOTALLY LITERAL. I AM
- NOT TALKING ABOUT MAKING THINGS UP, OR SEEING SOMETHING IN MY
- IMAGINATION. I AM NOT VISUALIZING ANYTHING IN MY MIND'S EYE. I AM
- LITERALLY DESCRIBING THINGS I SEE. NONE OF THIS IS FANTASY OR
- MAKE BELIEVE. I ACTUALLY SEE THINGS BEHIND MY CLOSED EYES.
-
- I just want to make sure you understand this. Anyone who has
- had any experiences with altered states of consciousness knows
- exactly what I am talking about. For those of you who have never
- had the kinds of experiences I'm describing here you will just
- have to accept what I am saying. If you practice the excercises
- I prescribe, there is a very good chance you will have these
- same types of experiences and then you too will know what I am
- talking about.
-
- I'm sorry to dwell on this, but let me say it again. Right now, imagine
- what you look like. Now imagine what your mother looks like. Ok. Now,
- you just "saw" images didn't you? What you just did was *imagine*
- your and your mother's face. You created these images in your mind's eye.
- THIS IS NOT WHAT I AM DESCRIBING HERE. As I said, from here on out
- when I say I "saw" this or that, I literally mean that I *saw* it. It
- is totally different from seeing something in my mind's eye. As a
- matter of fact, for example, while I see these little pinpricks
- of light, I can imagine whatever I want in my mind's eye. They are
- two different processes.
-
- Ok, I hope this is clear!
-
- Now, these little moving pin pricks of light are not just something I am
- making up. Psychologists have discovered these things and call them
- "ideoretinal light" (you will also see the terms "eighenlicht" and
- "entopic lights" - see the reference by Mavromatis in the bibliography).
- Many people see these little lights and psychologists have recorded
- many cases of it. Many people can see these little lights
- superimposed over their normal vision, that is, when their eyes
- are open. I can. Maybe you can too.
-
- Right now, just shut your eyes and stare into the darkness. What do you
- see? Stare specifically into this darkness, try to focus on it. Shut
- off the lights in the room or wait until night time, and do this again
- in the darkness. Try to make sense out of what you see behind your
- closed eyes.
-
- Chances are good that, in staring into the darkness behind your closed
- eyes, you too can see the ideoretinal lights. Perhaps you can see other
- things if you stare closely; maybe faint colors moving around in hard
- to describe ways, maybe even faint outlines of pictures. You might
- see after-images of what you were looking at right before you
- closed your eyes. Wait for these after-images to fade and THEN
- stare behind your closed eyes and try to figure out what you see.
- Different people see different things behind their closed eyes. What
- is important is that 1. you learn that you CAN see things behind your
- closed eyes, and 2. that you stare at whatever you can see behind your
- closed eyes while you are trying to go into trance.
-
- Back to the ideoretinal lights. Most psychologists assume that these
- little moving lights are some kind of effect of your eye randomly
- interacting with light. They explain these little dots as the effect
- of light randomly bouncing around inside your eye and triggering off
- the retina, thus sending nerve impulses to the brain, where these
- random bouncing light particles get perceived as this ideoretinal
- light. Be this as it may, on the basis of my experiences studying
- this ideoretinal light, I have come to the conclusion that IDEORETINAL
- LIGHT IS A DOORWAY TO THE ASTRAL PLANE. Quite a different conclusion
- from the psychologists, eh? <g> Let's get into what I mean.
-
- So, back to my trance experiences. I'm staring into the darkness
- behind my closed eyes and I see the ideoretinal light. I watch it move
- and wave around in the peculiar way it does. As my body continues to
- relax, at a certain point, the darkness behind my closed eyes
- no longer looks "flat". It transforms and now takes on a 3 dimensional
- appearance. It looks like a space back there now that I could reach
- into if I wanted to. However, I cannot reach into it, because at this
- point I can still feel my arms laying against my bed. Nonetheless,
- I am looking into this space of darkness, and this space is now
- swirling in a weird, subtle fashion and I can still see the ideoretinal
- lights swirling in this dark space.
-
- It's actually very important to correlate these changes in my vision
- with the changes in the feeling of my body. That is, these changes
- happen at the same time. As my relaxation deepens, my breathing
- becomes very quiet and regular, I start to feel heavy, like one
- feels as they are falling off to sleep, except I don't fall asleep.
- As this heaviness comes over me, it is about at this time that the darkness
- behind my eyes becomes like a dark space that I could reach into.
- I may feel a wave of relaxation sweep over me. For people out there
- who know about brain waves, I suspect that I am entering the alpha
- brain wave state at this point. Alpha brain waves indicate a
- state of deep relaxation. But I am still conscious of my body laying
- on the bed, and I can still hear sounds occurring outside or elsewhere
- in the house.
-
- However, it is shortly after this point (i.e. the onset of the alpha
- state, which corresponds to a feeling of deep relaxation) that really
- weird things start to happen in the darkness behind my closed eyes.
- Any number of things have happened to me at this point, so I will only
- describe a few of them.
-
- One thing that is relatively common is that I will see a flash of
- purple appear in the darkness behind my closed eyes. It's as if one
- of the little yellow pinpoints flared up into a bright purple flash,
- but only for a split instant. I see it and it's gone.
-
- Another really weird thing I've seen is that one of the little
- yellow lights will flare up, and *open up* into what looks
- like a little circular window! Sometimes it just stays open for an
- instant but I can't see anything in it, and then it shuts. Other
- times, one of the yellow lights will flare up this way and I can
- actually see something in it, as if I'm looking through a
- tiny little window! Once I saw trees through such a little window.
- Another time I saw an open doorway. When the yellow lights flare in
- this fashion, the image lasts longer than the purple flashes. The
- purple flashes come and go, but these little "windows" have stayed
- open for a number of seconds sometimes.
-
- And once I start seeing things like this in the darkness behind my
- closed eyes, basically this is where the dam breaks, so to speak,
- and I begin to see all kinds of other amazing things. So, at this
- point, I have to tangent off and introduce an idea that is
- very relevant and important here.
-
- The name of this section of the notes is "Hypnogogic Imagery". When
- you see stuff in the darkness behind your closed eyes, it is called
- "hypnogogic imagery". In the bibliography, I reference a book
- by Mavromatis, and this book is called "Hypnogogia". This is a
- whole book about hypnogogic imagery. This is a critical topic to
- study for anyone interested in astral projection, as will be clear
- below, and I highly recommend this book for any serious student
- of astral projection.
-
- In a nutshell, YOU WILL SEE HYPNOGOGIC IMAGERY AS YOUR TRANCE DEEPENS.
- In effect, the hypnogogic imagery is a signpost saying, "astral
- projection getting close". That is, ONCE YOU START SEEING HYPNOGOGIC
- IMAGES, IT WILL ONLY BE A SHORT TIME AFTER THIS THAT YOU WILL BE
- ABLE TO LEAVE YOUR BODY.
-
- Let me digress now. First I will give you some background on what
- is known and currently thought about hypnogogic images, then I
- will describe some of the hypnogogic images I have seen.
-
- Again, the psychologists have known about hypnogogic images for
- around 100 years now. The word "hypnogogia" refers to the state
- of consciousness right at the border between waking and sleeping.
- I mentioned this state earlier, and that is its name; hypnogogia.
- Some psychologists refer to hypnogogia as the border state when you
- are falling asleep, and refer to the border state as you are waking up
- as "hypnopompic". This distinction really doesn't matter because
- they both refer to the same state of consciousness; the border
- between sleeping and being awake. So, I will use the term hypnogia to
- refer to this state whether you are falling asleep *or* waking up.
- Now, in terms of astral projection, we are really only concerned
- about hypnogogia as you fall asleep, because when you "wake up"
- from an astral projection, it is immediate. When a projection ends,
- it ends. There is no hypnopomic state in an astral projection. Your
- consciousness will transfer instantly from the projection back here
- to the physical plane.
-
- Hypnogoia was a phenomenon discovered by people interested in understanding
- how dreams form. What was discovered in this research was that before
- people actually start to dream, a large majority of people will see
- images, very clear images, behind their closed eyes, and while they are
- still pretty much awake. This "pre-dream" imagery was called hypnogogic
- imagery. The imagery itself has no pattern. One may see faces, scenes,
- landscapes, weird colors, colored smoke clouds, twinkling lights,
- nightmare visions, anything. And for some people, they may even have
- hypnogogic smells and sounds. That is, not only do some people see
- images in the hypnogogic state, but they will hear sounds or smell things.
- In a nutshell, there is no good explanation for what causes hypnogogic
- images. If you want to see the theories psychologists are kicking
- around, check out the book by Mavromatis.
-
- This is about all I will say here about the study of hypnogogia. It's
- a fascinating topic for anyone interested in dreams, altered states of
- consciousness or astral projection. Again, I encourage you to look
- up Mavromatis' book "Hypnogoia" to learn more about this topic.
-
- For our purposes here the important thing to realize is that, as
- I said, when you induce a trance in yourself, you will pass
- through the hypnogoic state BEFORE you can leave your body. Again,
- seeing the hypnogogic images means, "you're almost there". What
- determines when you are actually ready to leave will be discussed
- below. Before going into that, I would like to list some of my
- own experiences in the hypnogogic state so that you have some idea
- of what it is like if you've never experienced it before. Again,
- the following quotes are excerpts from my astral projection journal,
- specifically of hypnogogic images I saw prior to leaving my body.
- You should note the variety and unpredictability of these images.
-
-
- 1>
- "...I began to lose my lockmold and felt myself fading away. Could
- feel myself in my physbod again. Could see hypnogogic images behind
- my closed eyelids. It looked like a duck staring at me-but I really
- don't know what it was, it wasn't moving though. What was really
- unique though is that the image was undulating like: (drawing in my
- notes). It looked like the undulations produced by dropping two rocks
- in the water. The bottom undulation was covering some type of
- landscape. Lost the image and woke up."
-
- 2>
- "Felt myself laying on my bed but I still felt like I could "leave."
- I began to see hypnogogic images of outdoor scenery; trees, houses,
- blue sky overhead. I "jumped" into the images and was on a suburban
- city street..."
-
- 3>
- "Today's experiences consisted solely of hypnogogic imagery. I have
- no recall of having actually left my body. Through the descriptions
- that follow, I was conscious of laying on my bed in my physical body.
-
- "a. I saw undulations for a brief period. These undulations looked
- like someone had dropped a rock in the water, except they went backwards,
- from the periphery to the center. The undulations occurred in the darkness
- behind my closed eyes."
- "b. The undulations faded and I was watching the darkness behind my
- closed eyes. I perceived a circular swirling motion between my eyes and
- this motion became like an expanding hole. In the hole I saw a woman's
- face. It was the face of a mature, older woman (maybe late 30s) and she
- had black hair. The face then transformed into a deformed version of
- itself. The jaws became grotesque and large and facial hair appeared.
- The face transformed again to that of an ape-like creature, though it
- still bore a direct resemblance to the original face. This third face
- had a rounder skull and less pronounced cheeks and jaw than the first
- face. These images were in full color and looked like photographic
- stills."
- "c. The ape-woman face faded. I then saw the face of a man. He
- appeared to be engaged in a conversation, though I could not hear
- anything. He looked to be from the 19th century by his dress. This
- image was animated though it was in black and white."
- "d. The image of the talking man faded. I felt a sinking feeling,
- or a wave of relaxation overtake me. My eyes were closed but my entire
- visual field was visible. In it there was a beautiful, dynamic panorama
- of swirling blues before me. It was a little darker than sky blue.
- It had an amorphous shape. It seemed to be framed by something that
- I could not identify. This image faded."
- "I continued concentrating and now a light purple mist, like a thin
- smoke cloud was before me. This faded."
- "I continued, though very relaxed, to concentrate on my visual field.
- A definite pattern appeared before me. It was a very strange image,
- not easy to describe. It was cartoon textured and colored in various
- shades of red, gray and off-white. It was slightly reminiscent of an
- Egyptian hieroglyphics text, but only slightly. It looked like a
- pattern of glyphs, but there was a woman's face and an outline of a body
- also in the pattern, though they looked abstract and not literal. The
- pattern moved three times. When it moved, it looked like "fire" or some
- molten looking liquid, welling up at one point in the pattern and going
- to and filling in another point in the pattern, almost like if you had
- two open pop bottles, one filled and the other empty, and the liquid
- flowed out of the filled one into the empty one. I really had no idea
- of what I was seeing here. This then faded and I fell asleep and went
- through a series of dream sequences, and I was barely bordering on being
- lucid."
-
- Finally, one more:
- 4>
- "...I felt myself laying on my bed back in my physbod. I relaxed and
- stared into the blackness behind my closed eyelids. Almost
- immediately, hypnogogic imagery began to appear. The images were
- very vivid and in color. I was seeing faces of dark skinned people.
- They looked like the painted faces of Native American Indians. There
- was an unusual effect that I would see a face from one particular angle,
- then the face would shift its angle and become a different face.
- After the faces had stopped "rotating", they spun off into the
- background and I could see all of them balled together, and they were
- wrapped up in an American flag."
- "As the image moved further away I tried to push myself out towards it.
- It worked and I was now standing in my new room in the attic. I floated
- up through the roof to the outside..."
-
-
- So, that gives you a little taste of the content of these hypnogogic
- images. There is no apparent rhyme or reason to them as far as I can tell.
- For a while I tried to figure out if there might be some kind of
- symbolic meaning to these images, but I gave up on this because
- a lot of these images are completely abstract and don't even make any
- sense when you look at them.
-
- There is one special type of hypnogogic image I would like to mention,
- that may occur to you. This is, you will be laying there relaxing and
- going into trance, and all of a sudden, you are staring at the room
- you are in clear as day. It's as if you are seeing your room
- through your closed eyelids! This can happen and has happened to
- me pretty frequently. It might even be the first hypnogogic image
- you see during any trance session. What's important to realize is that
- if this happens to you, you should recognize that it *is* a hypnogogic
- image, and, like any hypnogogic image, use it as a clue to the fact
- that you are close to being able to leave your body. Usually when
- this happens, the image of your room will fade and will be
- followed by more hypnogogic images.
-
- Finally, one last word about hypnogogia. I mentioned above that there
- are no good explanations about what causes hypnogogia. What I mean by
- this is that *psychologists* have no good explanations of what
- causes hypnogogia. On the other hand, occultists do have good
- explanations of what hypnogogia is, except they do not call it
- hypnogogia. What a psychologist calls "hypnogogia", an occultist
- calls "clairvoyance". That is, seeing these images is a form
- of clairvoyance. What causes clairvoyance, according to occultists,
- is transferring your consciousness from the physical body to the
- etheric or astral or mental bodies. The actual explanation gets
- more involvred and actually involves the theory of the chakras.
- It is not my intention to explain chakras here. I only mention
- this so that the interested reader can go explore on his own.
- Good starting references are two books by C.W. Leadbeater:
- "The Chakras" and "Clairvoaynce". Both these are listed in the
- bibliography. For those of you who already know about chakras,
- in two of the quotes I have above from my journal, I make reference
- to seeing a spinning thing that looks like the waves made by
- dropping a rock in the water. I believe these were direct perceptions
- of my own chakras (specifically, my third-eye chakra).
-
- Also, I need to say this: DON'T BE AFRAID OF ANY HYPNOGOGIC IMAGES YOU
- SEE. It's possible that you might see rotting bodies or something
- else that is grotesque and disgusting. Don't let it phase you. These
- images can't hurt you at all. No matter what you see, just remember
- that what's important is the fact that you are seeing anything at
- all. Even if the image is weird or ugly, it doesn't matter. What
- matters is that you are close to leaving your body. And just as
- important, if you do see something that startles you, RELAX YOURSELF
- IMMEDIATELY. Stare calmly at anything you see no matter how flipped
- out it appears. If you get too worked up, you will break your trance.
- You do NOT want to break your trance. Remember, all the while this is
- going on, you are trying to go into deeper and deeper states of
- relaxation.
-
- So, to wrap up this discussion of hypnogogia, the important point to
- drive home is that you will pass through hypnogoia on your way
- to the astral projection state. Now, this won't always happen, but it
- will happen more often than not.
-
- Now, let's go on to the other important aspect of putting yourself in
- trance: paying attention to your body sensations.
-
-
-
-
- ii. Kinesthetic Sensation
-
- Being aware of the sensation of your body is called "kinesthetic
- sensation". According to the dictionary I'm holding, the definiton
- of kinesthetics is:
-
- "a sense mediated by nervous elements in muscles, tendons
- and joints and stimulated by body movements and tensions;
- also: sensory experience derived from these sources."
-
- To put this into English; kinesthetic sensation is your awareness of
- your body and its movements. This is a form of perception too, just
- like seeing, or hearing, etc. Being aware of where your arm is at,
- being aware of the feeling of your butt as you sit on a chair, feeling
- your fingers wiggle, these and other like sensations are kinesthetic
- sensations. Being aware of the feeling of my body laying on my bed as
- I try to go into trance is a kinesthetic sensation. Focusing
- on my kinesthetic perceptions is a critical part of how I go into trance.
-
- I said that I focus on the feeling of my body laying on the bed, and
- that as my trance deepens, my kinesthetic sensations CHANGE. You can
- use these kinesthetic feelings, not only as a way to keep your awareness
- focused, but also as a clue as to when you can actually leave your body.
- As a matter of fact, THE WAY THAT I KNOW I CAN LEAVE MY BODY IS
- BECAUSE OF THE CHANGES IN MY KINESTHETIC SENSATIONS. The feeling
- of my body changes, and it is by these changes that I know I can "leave
- my body". Let me describe these changes for you.
-
- At first, you are aware of the feeling of your body laying on the bed.
- You are a little bit tired, so you are relaxing. As your relaxation
- deepens, you will feel your body get heavier. As I said above, you may
- feel a wave of relaxation sweep over your body. You may also feel your
- skin tingle or you may feel waves like little chills moving through
- your body.
-
- Let me tangent for a moment to discuss something that may have happened
- to you as you were falling off to sleep. Have you ever gone to bed,
- felt yourself getting more and more relaxed, and then all of a sudden
- felt yourself slip? I am not talking about having your arm or leg jerk
- or anything like that. I am talking about having actually felt your
- body falling or sliding off the bed. If this has happened to you, chances
- are good that it startled you and caused you to wake up. If you have
- ever felt such sensations, then realize that THIS IS WHAT IT FEELS LIKE
- WHEN YOU LEAVE YOUR BODY.
-
- Again, you are getting more and more relaxed. You feel your body
- getting heavier and heavier. Finally, all of a sudden, it feels like
- your body is slipping backwards, or that you are falling, or that
- your body is slipping forward, or that your body is floating gently
- downwards. All of these are possible kinesthetic sensations that
- you may experience. Prior to this you may or may not have been
- seeing hypnogogic images. Whatever the case, when this happens
- DO NOT GET STARTLED. Just go with the feeling, because when this
- happens, YOU ARE LEAVING YOUR BODY. You want to anticipate this
- happening. When it does start happening, you will be falling, sliding,
- slipping, or whatever, in complete darkness. Don't worry about
- the darkness either. This darkness is the void I mentioned. It's
- ok to be in the void. What will be happening at this point is that
- you will be falling, slipping, etc., through the void. At this point,
- YOU HAVE LEFT YOUR BODY. YOU ARE OUT OF YOUR BODY. You are in the void.
-
- If you find this happening to you, here's what to do. You can
- right yourself and "fly" through the void if you want to. You *can*
- move through the void. There is nothing going on, but you can move
- through it if you want. Like I said, the void is a nice place to
- just sit (or fly) and enjoy the quiet.
-
- If you want to cause yourself to appear somewhere in one of the
- planes/subplanes, TRY TO LOOK AT YOUR HANDS. You might find it
- a little difficult to pull your hands up in front of your face, but
- just do it anyway. What you will see at first is that you have no
- hands! Just stare at where it feels like your hands are. Wiggle
- your fingers, try to flail your arms. What will happen is that
- you will see your hands and arms form in front of you! At the
- same time, YOU WILL CAUSE A SCENE TO MATERIALIZE AROUND YOU. In effect,
- by doing this "hands trick", as I call it, what you are doing is
- tuning into a subplane, just like tuning into a radio station
- on the radio. The next thing you know, you will be *somewhere*.
- At this point, YOU ARE SOMEWHERE IN THE PLANES. We will talk
- in detail in the next section about what you can expect in terms
- of where you appear, and what to do once you appear somewhere.
-
- Another thing you can do to get out of the void is SPIN YOURSELF
- AROUND LIKE A TOP. Just spin yourself around as fast as you can,
- and, just like with the "hands trick", you will cause yourself
- to appear somewhere. I have used both the spinning trick and the
- hands trick numerous times to leave the void and enter the subplanes.
-
- Now, appearing in the void is NOT the only thing that can happen to
- you when you leave your body. A number of other things can occur too.
- These are as follows.
-
- It is also very likely that, as your relaxation deepens, and your body
- gets heavier and heavier, and you may or may not be seeing hypnogogic
- images, YOU WILL BLACKOUT, but only for a split instant. That is,
- you will lose your consciousness, but only for a moment. In an
- instant you will be conscious again, but you will no longer feel your-
- self laying on your bed, and you will no longer be looking into
- the darkness behind your closed eyes. You will regain your awareness
- after this momentary blackout and YOU WILL BE ASTRAL PROJECTING. You
- will be somewhere in the dream world, fully lucid. You could be
- anywhere: you may be standing in your room, you may be standing in
- a foreign house, you could be somewhere you recognize or somewhere
- that is unfamiliar to you. Whatever the case, you will be somewhere
- and you will be astral projecting.
-
- Now, another thing that can happen to you is that you are laying
- on your bed getting more and more relaxed, and you begin to see
- hypnogogic images. It is possible, as one of my journal entries
- above shows, that YOU CAN JUMP DIRECTLY INTO A HYPNOGOGIC IMAGE.
- You may be staring at a scene of a city street, or maybe a scene of
- a forest or, as I mentioned, you may be looking at the room you are in.
- You can try to "push out" into the scene itself.
-
- As your relaxation continues to deepen you will possibly feel other
- things, as I mentioned above: tingles on your skin, chills moving
- through your body. Also, you might hear strange sounds like creakings
- or wooshings or chains rattling. All of these sensations are
- characteristic of what you will experience as you cross the border
- from the waking state to the projection state. Don't be alarmed
- by any of this. It is all perfectly natural.
-
- Finally, as you practice and get more used to the kinesthetic sensations
- associated with leaving your body, what will happen is that eventually
- you will just *know* that you can "push out" of your body. Sometimes,
- this "pushing out" sensation will feel like you are squirming out of your
- body. Other times it will feel like you really are pushing outward. It
- may also feel like you are falling off your bed. Any number of sensations
- are possible. The point is, you can ACTIVELY push out of your body.
- Above I spoke about just letting yourself "fall" into the void, and
- this method of leaving your body is purely PASSIVE. You can
- passively leave your body or you can actively push out of your body.
- Both ways work. As you get better at projecting, you will find that
- most of the time you will actively push out of your body.
-
- To summarize at this point, what you want to do is pay attention
- to your kinesthetic sensations. These are the clues as to when you
- have left your body. The dissociation process will occur naturally and
- spontaneously. It does every night when you go to sleep and dream. The
- only difference here is that you are attempting to take your waking
- consciousness across the border with you. And, as time goes on, and you
- practice, you will eventually get used to the sensation of dissociating
- from your body, and you will just know when it's the right time to
- "jump out" into the OOBE.
-
- So, let me now summarize this trance method:
-
- 1. You will lie down in a comfortable place with the intent
- to project.
-
- 2. You will allow yourself to relax ever more deeply while at the
- same time, you will keep your mind focused on your self-awareness.
-
- 3. You can stare into the darkness behind your closed eyes and
- wait for hypnogogic images to appear.
-
- 4. You should stay very conscious of your kinesthetic sensations.
-
- 5. Expect the following to occur:
- A. Your body will feel more and more heavy as your
- relaxation deepens.
- B. You will probably see hypnogogic images.
- C. You should anticipate any of the following
- changes in your kinesthetic sensations:
- 1. Tingles and chills in your body.
- 2. A feeling of slipping, falling, floating.
- 3. A possible momentary blackout.
- 4. Recognition that you can actively push out of
- your body.
-
- Now, I must make very clear that the transition from the feeling
- of laying in your bed, to the feeling that you are no longer laying
- in your bed can take on an immense number of forms. There is NO one
- "correct" set of sensations. Almost anything is possible. What I have
- described above are the things I feel and perceive when I go into trance
- and try to leave my body. You may or may not feel and perceive the same
- things. However, what I have described above gives you something with
- which to get started. I have given you specific things to look for and
- expect. Chances are good that you will experience the same things I
- have described here, or experience something very similar.
-
- To wrap up this section on using the trance method to leave your body,
- I am going to list a number of my actual experiences of this transition.
- Again, these are actual entries out of my astral projection journal.
- I want to say that what you can perceive while entering into the astral
- projection state is completely amazing. I am always totally blown away
- by what happens in the transition from waking to projecting. And this
- is just the transition into the projection state - we have not even
- had our projection yet! But this borderland is completely amazing.
- I started out saying that it doesn't seem like you are leaving your
- body when you simply become lucid during a dream (as I described how to
- do in the previous section of these notes). However, once you've
- experienced the transition from waking to projecting, that is, once
- your awareness has directly passed through the borders between waking
- and projecting, you will be totally convinced that you have really
- "left your body". What I've described in this section is as real as it
- gets!!!! I wish you all good luck getting to, and getting across
- this borderland!
-
- With all the above said, let me now present for you some of my adventures
- on the border between waking and projecting.
-
- (continued in FILE 6)
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 5
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
- AP_06.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 6 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- HOW TO ASTRAL PROJECT - PART 3
-
-
-
- 3. Don's Actual Experiences On The Border Between
- Waking And Projecting
-
-
- So, here they are, right from my astral projection journal. Remember,
- these are all just excerpts of my experiences with the *transition*
- from being awake to being in a projection. I have purposely left
- out the description of my subsequent projections from these entries.
- We will discuss what it's like during an astral projection in the
- next section of these notes.
-
- As you read the following entries, try to keep in mind what I described
- in the previous file. You will see every possible combination of the
- sensations you can expect as you enter the projection state. You
- will also see in these notes some things I did not mention in File 5.
-
- Also, the parenthetical remarks are comments I have added to high-
- light certain features of each entry to which you should pay attention.
-
-
-
- 1>
- (This was my very first projection experience back in 1987.)
-
- "All I remember about my first willed projection is that I had gone
- to bed with the intent to project. After dozing off, at some point
- I became aware of the fact that I was looking at my bedroom, though
- I could feel that my eyes were closed. I was also very afraid, and
- the fear was of the quality that I had experienced years earlier: I
- was afraid but I didn't know why, and there was no apparent reason
- for my fear. I remember that something that seemed like a
- paper-machΘ snake was sticking out of my wall and biting my hands.
- But I could not feel anything except the fear sensation. I struggled
- and tried to pull away from the snake creature. Eventually, the fear
- response became so great that I could no longer bear it and I woke up."
-
-
-
- 2>
-
- "I awoke and attempted to travel. Felt my body falling back to sleep.
- In my third eye I felt myself sliding down a gigantic cliff. When I
- let go I was outside of my body. It seemed like I slid out through
- my feet. I flew out of my bedroom into the back yard..."
-
-
-
- 3>
- (Note here how I saw hypnogogic images prior to leaving my body.
- This is also an example of blacking out before leaving)
-
- "Looking at an aura from on the inside of it that looked like the modern
- one in Master D.K.'s book. Grey background, orange red and black pictures
- in it, but more like glyphs than photos. I felt uncomfortable looking at
- it because of what I thought the colors meant. Then as I was looking, a
- jet or spray of red particles in a fine mist seemed to emit from me!
- The aura seemed to be either revolving around me or it was changing its
- appearance as I looked at it. It appeared like it was on a concave wall,
- like the inside of a bowl. I saw other "weird" things while I was
- stationary on my bed but can't remember them. A large featureless fish
- seemed to swim past me. I blacked out.
- When I regained my vision I was standing on steps leading down
- into what appeared to be a basement laundry mat..."
-
-
- 4>
- (Here is an example of me using the hands trick. This occurred
- during the middle of a projection though. Notice that I ended
- up tuning into one of the lower subplanes)
-
- "Then I faded out of the lockmold and was back in the void again.
- I tried my newly discovered hand trick again. This time I got
- strange results. I saw my hand appear, kind of ghost like and
- transparent, then disappear as I withdrew my immediate attention from
- trying to feel/move it. I re-concentrated on feeling it. Now I was
- looking at my palm, thumb and about 1/2 of one finger. This kind of
- grossed me out cause it looked like melted wax or something where the
- rest of my hand should have been. Then I watched my other fingers
- "grow" or materialize, first as stumps, then they formed into my
- fingers. Then I got the idea to try to feel both hands, then my legs
- and feet. I was literally wiggling my whole body. This seemed to
- cause the void to disappear and make me phase in to a new lockmold.
- Again, wherever I was felt desolate and dingy..."
-
- 5>
- (Here is an active, "push out" example)
-
- "Laid concentrating, felt myself escape. I was in a purple cocoon,
- plastic like, surrounding me. I shut my eyes and flew/pushed my way
- through it. Went upwards. I was in an unfamiliar small bedroom on the
- second story. I got the impression I was up over my bedroom, but
- everything was unfamiliar..."
-
-
- 6>
- (Here's an example of the problems you may encounter
- when trying to push out of your body. In this case
- I pushed out into the void, but used the hands trick
- to cause myself to materialize. There is another
- trick here which I use to keep my lockmold strong.
- Note that this occurred during the middle of a projection,
- but the ideas are the same as at the beginning of a projection.)
-
- "Was back in my physbod, very close to being awake. I could hear sounds
- outside, feel the bed under me, etc. But I didn't want it to end yet so
- I laid there trying to fall back into it. As my trance was deepening,
- or my concentration was getting stronger, I had the momentary experience
- of simultaneously being in my physical body lying on my bed, but also of
- floating half way out of my physical body. I tried to jump out. I
- could only see the void, but it didn't feel like I went anywhere. I
- jumped out 4 or 5 times but, even though I felt myself jump, it didn't
- seem like I was "out". Finally though I felt "out". I was in the void,
- but I could definitely see the silhouette of my bedroom around me.
- I tried intensely to materialize. I achieved a partial materialization.
- I was standing there in my room, looking at my arms. My hands weren't
- there, there were only stumps that looked melted. But I could "feel"
- my hands. I tried wiggling my fingers and they appeared, but only
- slightly. My hands looked like melted stumps with barely visible,
- practically transparent fingers wiggling around on them. And I was
- having a difficult time maintaining my lockmold. I remembered how
- hugging the counter in that bar had helped stabilize my lockmold, so
- I grabbed my chair with my transparent hands, and I could feel
- myself stabilize. I hugged the chair with my body trying to be as
- conscious as I could of the sensation of my body up against the chair.
- I stayed like this until I felt confident to move. Once my lockmold
- stabilized, I was surprised by how lucid I felt. I felt completely
- awake and lucid and I was in awe at how real everything seemed around
- me. My mind began to race. What should I do with my lucidity, what
- can I explore?..."
-
- 7>
-
- (Here's an example of me becoming lucid in a dream)
-
- "I was in a dream, walking down an unfamiliar street in an unfamiliar
- neighborhood, and for no apparent reason, it dawned on me that I was
- dreaming. I figured it was best to stay cool about the fact and not
- get excited, so I kept walking and stayed casual. Yet now I was
- completely aware of my environment. It was very vivid. I was on a
- boulevard walking past a rather large school...."
-
- 8>
-
- (Here's an example of no break in consciousness
- while entering the projection)
-
- "Totally conscious transfer to projection, there was no break in
- my consciousness. I was laying on my bed. Felt that "sinking"
- feeling of relaxation. Saw a grey pattern and "swam" into it.
- The pattern took on a more geometric form around me, like a checker
- board, but it was like moving static as well. When the static
- cleared I was flying about a department store..."
-
- 9>
- (A nice illustration of entering the projection state)
-
- " Was very tired and went into trance easily. Laid concentrating
- for a bit and eventually scenes began forming in my third eye (i.e.
- hypnogogic images). I relaxed and pushed myself out, actually I
- kind of "fell" out. I was in the void but it was only a very light
- grey smoky mist this time. I stared into it and it formed into a
- nicely colored pattern. I thought to myself, "now this is the
- astral plane." What I saw was an orange-yellow light centered and
- somewhat off in the distance. Surrounding this, or emanating from
- it was a blueish-purple mist that faded into black at the periphery.
- The scene eventually faded.
- I was back in my physbod and pushed myself out again. This time I
- was standing in my new bedroom..."
-
-
- 10>
- (Another example of being at the border. This also illustrates
- how you may be somewhere that is familiar but it is also
- different.)
-
- "I remember standing at the edge of some kind of "opening", in what
- I don't know. The opening was surrounded by clouds and darkness.
- Through the opening I could see dancing color patterns that looked
- like a lightning storm. The only colors I remember were flashing
- yellows and whites, on a dark background. I stood there watching
- for a moment but I don't recall what happened next. I had the
- realization I could leave my body. I jumped out and was in a room
- that resembled my room at Dad's house, except none of my stuff was
- there and the walls were white plaster..."
-
- 11>
-
- (Here's an example of how confusing it can be sometimes.)
-
- "Woke at 9 AM, went back to sleep and dreamed. Woke again at 11:30 AM.
- I decided to go back to sleep. Laid there concentrating on the space
- behind my closed eyes. I had to go to the bathroom, and John had left
- the door of our room open. I could hear my roommates downstairs. Saw
- pictures in my third eye; a couple of different views of my face, some
- landscapes, and some unidentifiable figurines. Then my roommate Drew
- came up the steps and he threw a crumpled up bag at me.
- "You ***hole, get outta here!" I said to him.
- He said, "No way, man, I'm gonna bug you."
- He came over by my bed and I reached out to strike at him. When
- I swung my arm forward, it was then that I felt like I was pulling out
- of my body. Drew was trying to bug me and it dawned on me that I was in
- trance. I was curious because there was no break in my consciousness
- at all. I then faded back into my body. I tried to go back to the
- projection. A rift formed in the space behind my eyes, and in this
- rift, a blurry figure was trying to grab at me. Lost this lockmold.
- Woke up completely. Heard Drew downstairs playing his guitar."
-
-
- 12>
-
- (This is a nice description of some kinesthetic sensations.)
-
- " Laid there in bed a while paying attention to my physiology as I
- was falling back asleep. Felt streams of warmth shooting through
- my body and vibrations thru my arms, legs and torso. I saw a picture
- form in my third eye, it was unrecognizable. Must have broke
- consciousness because the next I knew I was in the state where I
- felt I could dissociate. Laid there struggling to get out. I wiggled
- out. I ran to the front window here in the attic..."
-
- 13>
- (Here's an example of stepping into a hypnogogic image, also
- note what I say about being startled and keeping myself
- relaxed.)
-
- " I woke from sleep. Had fleeting glimpses of my dream memories then
- they were gone. Laid observing my physiology. I had an aspirin the
- night before and now I felt it burning in my stomach. I felt better
- than I did before I fell asleep. I shut my eyes and could see into
- (through?) my third eye. As is common for me, whenever a picture would
- form I would feel a tightening in my heart, which would always cause
- the image to fade from my third eye. I tried to still this and relax
- and just calmly watch the pictures form in my third eye. A few scenes
- formed and faded but I don't recall what they were. Finally I managed
- to coordinate my heart and third eye chakras. The scene of a street
- formed vividly in front of my closed eyes. There was a river off to
- my left, 50-100 yards from the road. On the left seemed to be a
- construction site. There were buildings on my right. I was trying
- to observe details and I felt my foot step forward! Surprised the
- hell out of me! Next thing I knew, I was walking along the street...."
-
-
- 14>
- (Another example of leaving.)
-
- "Woke around 1:00 AM. Within about 1 hour, I felt a throb at the
- back of my head. Wondered if it had anything to do with my pineal
- gland. Tried to fall back to sleep but I was too uncomfortable
- from the pain. Was up for a little while, took some aspirin and
- went back to bed.
- I laid in bed waiting for the aspirin to hit me. Soon I could see
- the swirling motion moving through the darkness behind my closed
- eyes. I thought of the motion as "my friend". I tried to sense if
- there was any connection between the throbbing and the motion. Next
- I knew, the aspirin took effect and the throb was numbed away. I
- continued to watch in my third eye. I started to be able to see
- the meme bacteria and the imagery was surprisingly clear. However,
- whenever I achieved a good clear focus, I would become too excited
- and the images would fade. Laid thinking about some material I had
- read earlier about microtubule transport and diffusion c-AMP networks
- in the brain and what this might have to do with the meme bacteria
- that I could see.
- I must have drifted off cause the next thing I realized, I could
- leave my body. But I was laying in a bed in a totally unfamiliar
- room. I flew out through the wall and was in an unfamiliar suburb..."
-
-
- 15>
-
- (Here's a nice description of watching the hypnogogic images,
- also in this experience I appear on the etheric plane.)
-
- "Laid down to project. Was very relaxed. Laid watching images form in my
- third eye (the so-called hypnogogic images). I watched this process
- carefully. At first the images could be seen to appear in the grainy
- milieu behind my closed eyes. They would be the graininess in the form
- suggestive of a face. They did not have color to them. Soon though I
- would be observing an image in full color, but it would only last an
- instant. The instant I would be aware of a vivid and distinct image,
- my heart chakra would tense and the image would disappear. Also, I'd
- feel myself "slip" closer to being wide awake when I'd lose an image.
- Soon the images were forming rapidly and in color. They were very subtle.
-
- Once I became relaxed enough that I would not "tense" the pictures away,
- I noticed that the images would blend imperceptibly with my visual memory.
- That is, one instant I would be observing a hypnogogic image, the next
- instant I was remembering the image. At times this would occur so quickly
- that I almost couldn't tell if I was just conjuring up an image in my
- imagination. Finally, one particular image clicked in and I felt very
- stable. I thought to myself, "This is it. Leave now."
-
- I looked around and saw I was lying on a bed in a room that looked like
- my bedroom (at my Dad's house, which is where I am at right now), except
- there was no furniture in this room. I could hear "haunted house" sounds:
- wind blowing, shrieking and clanking and howling sounds. They were not
- loud but they were audible. I tried to levitate but I could not. I
- could feel my body and it was paralyzed. I realized that I was on the
- etheric plane. I could hear my step mother talking very clearly in the
- next room. I tried to get up. It was very difficult to move but I
- pulled myself up. I pulled my covers off of me and tried to stand up.
- I felt very heavy and knew I was in my etheric (ectoplasm) body...."
-
-
- 16>
-
- "Went to take a nap after classes. Been frustrated lately cause I
- haven't traveled in about a month. Was determined to do it now. Laid
- in bed trying to focus, but my mind kept wandering. Finally I made
- a strong determined effort. A couple hypnogogic images came and went.
- One of them was sexual and it caused me to wake. I began to concentrate
- on the lights behind my closed eyes (entopic light) and the "whooshing"
- sounds in my ear (the blood circulating in the ear). Some time passed,
- yet I kept concentrating. Finally it hit. I felt the "headrush" feeling,
- but at that moment its significance escaped me. But I tried to jump
- out anyway. It worked! I was in my bedroom, lockmold blinking on and
- off badly...."
-
-
- 17>
- (Here's an example of a passive exit, and apparently here
- I "fell" into my hypnogogic images! Note too that this
- entry occurred in the middle of a projection, but again, the
- same thing could easily happen when you first try to leave.
- Note too how I am trying to remember my projection while it
- is occurring.)
-
- "Laid trying to remember all that has been recorded to this point
- before I attempted to leave again. Soon I felt as if I was reclined
- backwards, with my feet up about 2 feet up in the air, though I was
- still stretched out on my bed. I stared into the "stars" (ideoretinal
- light) behind my closed eyes and I could see green and purple shapes
- of the meme bacteria moving in a way that looked like unicellular
- creatures moving under a microscope (like the motion one sees when
- looking at pond water under a microscope). I could see this quite
- clearly. I mentally kept tipping myself steeper backwards. Then
- suddenly I slid backwards right into the midst of the meme bacteria!
- This made me scared. But I could see helical tubes of green and
- purple moving and spiraling around me. I knew that I must be in
- my brain somewhere. I can't remember now (as I'm recording this)
- exactly what I saw. However I had continued to fall backwards, and
- it was as if I slid backwards through the green and purple spirals.
- When I stopped falling backwards, I had landed in a rather large room
- that seemed familiar to me, though I couldn't place why..."
-
- 18>
- (Here I apparently feel lighter instead of heavy
- as my trance gets deeper. See, this is why you write the
- stuff down! I never would have remembered this!)
-
- "Woke about 7:00 AM. Went and pissed and came back to bed intent
- upon leaving. Laid down feeling "stiff-tired". As I relaxed and
- concentrated I felt myself get lighter and lighter. Saw the "stars"
- ("ideoretinal light") transform into a balloon-like cocoon surrounding
- me. I turned around and pushed backwards through it. I think I
- appeared in a forest, but I can't remember now for sure. I recall
- walking along a muddy dirt road...."
-
- 19>
- (The following rather long entry was written about 1
- year after I started astral projecting. You will note
- many of the familiar themes I have described above, but
- also note my more detailed description of them. As
- these elements became more familiar to me, I would
- take more time to study them carefully.)
-
- "The most exciting thing today was my hypnogogic imagery I saw before
- I left my body. I am most definitely getting better at allowing third
- eye images to form. I don't seem to need to go into as deep a trance
- as I used to before the imagery starts. Today I was only very relaxed,
- not even in trance yet, and the first image formed. It lasted in
- full proportions for maybe 5 seconds then weakened a bit and lingered
- for maybe another 20 seconds. After the image weakened a bit, I
- could actually open my eyes and still see the hypnogogic image at
- the same time! The heart chakra jerk that usually accompanies my
- recognition of a hypnogogic image was weaker today. When I felt it,
- it did not cause the image to fade. I'm beginning to suspect that
- the perceiving of these hypnogogic images is related to brain wave
- states (i.e. EEG patterns), because there is a very distinct change
- in the "carrier wave" of my consciousness before these images begin
- to arise.
- What was the image? (picture in notebook) It was a circle that was
- divided up like a pie and it looked to have rivets in it. I wondered
- if it was some type of image of one of my chakras. It had a yellowish
- white cast to it. In the "stronger image" the upper left quadrant of
- the circle seemed to be open revealing a view of a cloudy blue sky.
- There were also little neon green springs that flitted in and out of my
- vision. When the image became "weaker" the region showing the sky
- disappeared, it closed up, and all I could see was an image of the
- circle, though it seemed more transparent, the colors were more pale.
- After the image deteriorated, I could see lots of "neon motion" in
- the darkness behind my closed eyes superimposed over the imagery of
- the drifting entopic light. I desired to leave. Soon, the
- Kundalini vibrations started up and took over my body. These felt
- like chills whipping gently up and down my whole body. I laid there
- feeling this for some time. At some point I attempted to leave,
- to push up and out, and it worked.
- I was in my bedroom and it looked extremely physical - so much so
- that I wasn't even sure if I had left or if I had woken up. But
- when I tried to move, my motion was sluggish and lethargic and the
- farther I moved from my bed the more difficult it was to continue,
- and I knew then that I was in my etheric body. Couldn't pass through
- the ceiling, wall or behind bookshelf. Then I "snapped" back into my
- physbod.
- Layed there drifting off in my thoughts. Finally, I refocused on
- leaving again. My consciousness seems to have broken and next thing I
- knew, I was flying in the void. Flew for a distance then tried the
- hands trick. It took some time for me to focus myself in, but it
- worked well this time. As soon as I could see/feel my body, my
- bedroom had materialized around me as well. My room appeared different
- though now...."
-
- **END OF JOURNAL ENTRIES**
-
- Well, I hope you didn't mind all those entries. The reason I put so many
- in these notes is because getting out of your body is obviously the
- most crucial part of this whole experience! I wanted to illustrate to
- you just how variable this is and how many different ways it can manifest.
- And also, as you can see from the above entries, leaving your body
- is by no means a cut and dry thing. Sometimes I was not sure if I was
- still awake or if I was in trance yet. Of course, eventually I'd
- figure it out, but it's not always obvious. Also, you can see
- that there is no regular pattern to what happens as you go deeper
- into trance. Sometimes you may see hypnogogic images, other times
- you may fall into them! Sometimes you might not even see them.
-
- In spite of all this complexity, I really hope I have at least given you
- some idea of what it is like to go into trance and what it is like
- to leave your body.
-
-
- 4. Other Techniques For Getting Out Of Body
-
- Before I start the topic of what it is actually like in a projection,
- I want to briefly mention some other methods that people use to
- get into the projection state. I have saved these techniques for last
- because I don't use them and don't really know too much about them.
- I suspect that if you want more information about the following
- techniques you can go enquire on the message boards here in the CompuServe
- New Age forum. There are many people here in the forum who know
- more about these techniques than I do. As well, there are references
- provided in the bibliography that specify in much more detail than I do
- here how to achieve projctions using these other methods (see
- especially Rogo's "Leaving The Body"). The techniques I'd like to
- mention now are: 1. visualization methods, and 2. using electronic
- devices such as tapes and other gadgets and using drugs.
-
-
-
- A. Visualization Methods
-
- The basic idea of visualization methods for projecting entails
- creating an image in your mind's eye and then stepping into this image.
- Above, in my discussion about the trance method, I went to great
- effort to make clear that hypnogogic images are different than
- images created in your visual imagination (i.e. your mind's eye).
- What we now want to discuss are the images you create in your visual
- imagination, and we are NOT discussing hypnogogic images.
-
- Like the trance method, visualization methods require concentration.
- You create an image in your mind's eye and you must concentrate on
- this image, which means you must hold this image uninterrupted in
- your mind's eye. Such a thing is not easy to do. If you can hold
- on to one thought for longer than 5 seconds you are doing really good.
- This type of concentration is also a basic technique of yoga meditation.
- In yoga, one may concentrate on a mandala or a chant as a meditation
- exercise. Concentrating on a mandala is a visualization exercise.
-
- So, to achieve a projection through visualization, one must first be
- very good at concentrating on visual images. If you are not good at
- this, it will require much preliminary practice before you ever
- see your first projection. You will have to practice daily on
- holding an image uninterrupted in your mind's eye. It is only when
- you can hold an image in your mind's eye for an extended period of time
- - perhaps 15 to 30 minutes - that you will then be able to enter
- into this image.
-
- Next, what does it mean to "enter an image in your imagination"?
- Now, since I do not use this method, I can only go by what I have
- read. From these sources, it appears that the act of stepping
- into a visual image is similar to pushing out of your body as is
- done in the trance method. Frankly, I can't imagine that this is very
- easy to do. Stepping into an image in your mind's eye is a different
- process than stepping into a hypnogogic image or pushing out of
- your body while in trance. I suspect that very few people find it easy
- to *literally* step into their thoughts. Sure, we all day-dream to
- some extent or another, but how many of us *physically feel
- ourselves* in the day-dream? I know I do not. When I day-dream,
- I am fully aware that I am making up a story in my mind, and my
- kinesthetic sensations are firmly fixed here in the physical world.
- Yet, it seems to me that this is what visualization methods entail;
- stepping into a day-dream.
-
- I suspect that the ability to literally step into your thoughts
- must be a talent possessed by a small fraction of the human population.
- For most of us, there is a very rigid distinction between our
- perception of ourself in the physical world and in our thoughts.
- For example, when we are sitting in a classroom day-dreaming, we
- are still (painfully? <g>) aware of the fact that we are sitting
- in the classroom, and that we are NOT inside our day-dream.
- For some people however, this must not be the case. Perhaps for
- a small percentage of people, they have the ability to literally
- feel themselves inside of their day-dreams! And it seems to me
- that this is the essential gist of the visualization methods for
- achieving astral projection; in effect, you create a daydream,
- and you shift your awareness from the physical plane into this
- day-dream. That is to say, you shift your kinesthetic
- sensations from yur physical environment to the made-up environment
- in your imagination. Having never done this, I obviously don't know what
- it is like to step into a day-dream.
-
- If the idea of becoming lucid in a dream seems like an
- "artificial" way to astral project (which, again, it is NOT),
- then it seems to me that stepping into a day-dream, or
- an image you have concocted in your imagination is even more
- artificial. By "artificial" I mean lacking spontaneity. The
- trance method is by far the most spontaneous method of astral
- projecting in that you are creating nothing in your imagination
- when you do the techniques I outlined above. Everything is
- spontaneous in the trance state: the hypnogogic images,
- the sensations you feel, and where you eventually appear
- once you leave your body. The dream method is less spontaneous
- in that you never directly perceive your consciousness dissociating
- from your physical body. Yet, there is no question that the
- content of your dreams is highly spontaneous and unpredictable.
- In the case of visualization methods, it appears that one perceives
- themself entering into the visualization, but, you are then in
- an environment created by your own imagination, which is about the
- most predictable thing there is.
-
- However, the one book I have read that really advocates
- the visualization method (see Brennan, "Astral Doorways") refers
- to these visualized (i.e. imagined) environments as "astral doorways".
- So, I suspect that what this means is that the place you have
- visualized in your imagination, which you want to be standing within,
- simply gets you to the astral plane. Once you are there, you can
- then leave this artificial place of your own creation and go
- explore the planes. This is what Brennan and others who advocate
- visualization describe.
-
- That's about all I have to say about visualization methods.
- My intenton here is not to teach you visualizatiuon methods
- but to simply expose you to the fact that this method exists.
- The idea of a visualization method is that you make up an image
- in your mind's eye, and then you step into this image as a means
- of to getting to the astral plane. As I said, there is nothing easy
- about this technique. Not only do you have to have the ability
- to concentrate on one thought for long periods of time (15
- minutes is an eternity when you are holding one thought in your
- mind), but you as well have to have the rare ability to be
- able to step into your thoughts. The ability to step into
- your thoughts is apparently the ability to transfer, or displace,
- your kinesthetic sensations from your physical environment to
- the image in your mind. Again, I cannot do this, so I am obviously
- in no position to tell you how to do it. Like I said, I suspect
- that a few rare individuals can naturally do this, but for most of
- us, cultivating this ability would take a LOT of work. And given
- how easy the trance method I described above is, and how effective
- it is for getting you to the astral plane, I don't think you
- need to waste time learning how to do visualization exercises.
- However, if you are into ritual magic, yoga and meditation, then
- visualization exercises are right up your alley and you may
- find this a suitable method for getting to the astral plane.
-
-
-
-
- B. Drugs, Tapes And Other Devices
-
- Finally, I want to address methods that rely on some kind
- of external gadget to help you get to the astral plane. Such
- gadgets could be listening to tapes, wearing goggles, and
- possibly even taking drugs. In general, all of these gadgets
- are designed to put you into a state of mind that will make it
- easy for you to leave your body.
-
- Let me discuss drugs first. In my experiences, common street
- drugs do NOT help you achieve astral projection. Street drugs
- such as alcohol, marijuana, LSD, and cocaine create conditions
- inside your body that will PREVENT you from astral projecting.
- This at least has been my personal experience. Perhaps there
- are people who have been able to project by using street drugs
- but I do not know any of them. And in all of the books I have
- read about astral projection, not one of them mentions using
- drugs as a means to achieve OOBEs. So, based on what I have read
- and based on my own personal experience, street drugs CANNOT
- help you achieve an astral projection. Again, street drugs
- PREVENT you from astral projecting.
-
- Now, I was careful in the previous paragraph to discuss only
- street drugs. There are medications that doctors use that
- seem to put you in a state that induces OOBEs. Most notably,
- there is a drug called ketamine (sometimes called "K" or
- "vitamin K" on the streets) which can put you in an OOBE.
- Doctors *used to* use ketamine as an anesthetic, mainly on children
- getting their tonsils out and on pregnant women in labor.
- Doctors call Ketamine a "dissociative anesthetic" because
- the drug doesn't simply put you to sleep as an anesthetic is supposed
- to do, but it causes your consciousness to separate from your body.
- Not only this, but patients given ketamine often reported very
- unpleasant experiences such as nightmares or weird visions.
- Because of this, doctors do not use ketamine anymore as an
- anesthetic, at least here in the United States. In Europe, doctors
- still use ketamine.
-
- Aside from its legitamate usage as an anesthetic, because of the fact
- that ketamine produces such weird psychological effects, its use
- as a street drug has become popular. You will find in underground
- literature, or in magazines such as "High Times" descriptions
- of people using ketamine as a mind altering substance. The
- descriptions that people give are actually quite intriguing
- and fascinating. On the basis of what is known medically about
- ketamine, I suspect that ketamine produces a state similar
- to hypnogogia, and can even induce OOBEs, and this is the basis
- for the amazing reports of "K" that you will hear on the streets.
-
- So, should you try to use ketamine to achieve OOBEs? Frankly, I
- DO NOT ADVOCATE THE USE OF KETAMINE FOR ACHIEVING OOBES. The reason
- for this is two-fold. First, you DON'T need a drug to achieve OOBEs.
- The trance method I describe above is easy enough and effective
- enough. In light of this, why waste time with a drug? Furthermore,
- you have to INJECT ketamine, there is no pill form. The
- idea of sticking a needle in ones arm is not very pleasing. Second,
- I once actually tried ketamine, and you know what? It IS an
- anesthetic! All I wanted to do was go to sleep! Nothing happened
- to me at all. I got no weird psychological effects - nothing.
- It was a completely disappointing experience. So, besides the
- fact that you have to stick a needle in your arm to do ketamine, it
- doesn't seem to be as much of a panacea as its advocates make
- it out to be. My recommendation: stay away from ALL drugs when
- trying to astral project. DRUGS WILL NOT HELP YOU ASTRAL PROJECT.
-
- Now, what about things like tapes or other electronic gadgets
- that are supposed to help you astral project? Again, there are
- many New Age forum members interested in this topic. You can
- get more information on the message boards in the New Age forums
- than I can give you here. Essentially though, the idea behind
- these gadgets, from tapes to whatever, is that they manipulate
- or affect your brain waves in such a way as to help you achieve
- an astral projection. Do they work? I'm sure they do for some people.
- There are probably people for whom the dream and trance methods,
- or any other non-gadget methods simply do not work. These kind of
- people can benefit from the use of electronic gadgets to help
- them achieve an OOBE.
-
- Tapes that help you astral project are very common. One source of such
- tapes is the Monroe Institute in Faber, Viginia. Robert Monroe is a
- well known astral projector (his books are listed in the bibliography).
- Monroe has since gone into the business of offering tapes and retreats,
- not so much for learning how to astral project, but for learning how to
- become a more integrated person. He does claim that some of his tapes
- can help "facilitate" OOBEs. He claims to have discovered a method,
- which he has patented, called the "Hemi Sync" method. The hemi sync
- method entails putting different frequency sound waves in each ear,
- which then are supposed to result in making a standing wave in your
- brain that supposedly makes it easier to astral project.
-
- Frankly, I don't know if this is what his hemi sync method really does.
- The actual physiology of brain waves is much more complex than Monroe's
- simplistic explanation of hemi sync. But still, whether his explanation
- of his hemi sync method is believable or not, the bottom line is:
- do his tapes work?
-
- I have actually tried one of Monroe's tapes. What is on the tape is
- some rather low budget New Age music with sounds like ocean waves
- underneath the music. Apparently, the ocean wave-like sounds are
- the hemi sync frequencies. Now, what is very interesting is that
- I actually did have a projection after listening to the tape! However,
- I want to stress, I used his tape ONE TIME ONLY. I do not know if
- his tape caused me to project or not. I project all the time
- without using tapes, so just because I projected after
- listening to Monroe's tape does not mean the tape caused my projection.
-
- Basically, I have not tested Monroe's product well enough to
- say definately that it does or does not work. Should you go
- buy one of Monroe's tapes and test it for yourself? I only
- recommend doing this if you have tried the dream and trance methods
- but have gotten NO RESULT WHATSOEVER. I don't think you need
- to go using tapes unless you know for sure that non-gadget
- methods will not work for you. As I said, I've had way over 100
- OOBEs and I NEVER use tapes or other gadgets. I DO NOT THINK
- THAT MOST PEOPLE NEED GADGETS TO ASTRAL PROJECT. People have
- been astral projecting just fine for centuries without the use
- of tapes or other electronic gadgets. And the methods that have
- been developed based on dreams, trance and visualization work
- very well. I recommend strongly that you try the traditional
- methods of astral projecting before you go and buy tapes
- or other gadgets that are supposed to help you astral project.
-
- Now, are there other kinds of electronic gadgets that are
- supposed to help you astral project? I've heard talk here
- in the New Age forum about "dream goggles". I don't
- know what these are or what they are supposed to do. You might
- want to ask around on the message board if you are interested in
- anything like this.
-
- In some respects it is good that people are experimenting with
- electronic means to achieve altered states of consciousness.
- However, virtual reality is nothing compared to a REAL astral
- projection. I personally am not into any of these electronic
- ways of achieving altered states. I prefer more "natural"
- methods like trance or dream methods. In the end, your
- choice of trying these electronic methods is completely up to
- you. If you want to spend money on these gadgets or tapes,
- that is your buisness. However, I want to make it perfectly
- clear that you have built right into you all the tools you
- *need* to astral project. Again, astral projection is a
- natural ability just like dreaming. You can do it without
- recourse to electronic devices of any kind.
-
- So that's it. This now ends my presentation of methods used
- for astral projection. Again, check out the bibliography
- for information on books that describe other methods besides
- the dream and trance methods I have emphasized here.
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 6
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_07.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 7 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- 1. IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 1
-
- We have discussed the theory of astral projection. We have
- discussed methods and techniques for achieving this altered state
- of consciousness. Now we are going to discuss what it is like in the
- realm where the OOBE occurs. To some extent we have touched on
- the nature of the OOBE realm throughout these notes. We have, for
- example discussed the occult notions of the planes and the subplanes.
- I have also presented some of my astral projection journal entries
- and these give an idea of what it is actually like in the OOBE realm.
-
- What we will do in this section is go into much more depth
- about the various aspects of actually being in the OOBE state.
- My description of this state will encompass two broad angles.
- On one hand I will take a kind of "travel brochure" approach to
- describing the places and inhabitants one encounters during an
- OOBE. This is the approach one will find in many books about the
- astral plane (for example, see Leadbeater's "The Astral Plane"
- listed in the bibliography). Such a "travel brochure" approach
- describes the astral plane much as if it's a foreign land filled
- with exotic sights, scenes and inhabitants. On the other hand, I
- also want to try to convey some sense of what it is *really* like
- when you are out of your body. One of the problems with the "travel
- brochure" approach to describing the OOBE realm is that it
- creates the misleading impression that you have simply just
- "gone somewhere". That is, "travel brochure" type descriptions
- of the astral plane make it sound like you just get in your car and
- drive there and see the sights, as if it's Disneyland or something.
- However, when you are out of body, it is NOT like getting in your
- car and driving somewhere new and seeing the sights. You are
- in a completely different state of consciousness - you are
- no longer in the physical world - and this creates a million
- subtle nuances in your awareness that make it much, much different
- than how your awareness operates while you are here in the
- physical plane. What I would like to do then is try to convey
- some of these differences in how your consciousness works when
- you are in the OOBE realm. So, overall, I will describe the OOBE
- realm BOTH as a place you go to AND as a state of consciousness very
- different than (but related to) your normal consciousness.
-
-
- 1. Describing OOBEs with words
-
- Before I get too deep in describing the OOBE realm, something
- has to be said about the limitations of using words to describe
- experiences in the OOBE realm. In general, our language is very
- poor at describing astral plane experiences. This is no surprise
- given that we use language overwhelmingly to describe life here in
- the physical plane. However, experience is much different in the
- OOBE state. There are many things that can occur in the OOBE state
- that our language has no words to describe. Obviously then, this
- creates quite a problem when we want to write about or speak
- about our astral projection experiences! So what are we to do?
-
- First thing to do is realize that the problems with trying
- to describe OOBEs in words is very similar to the problems we have
- describing our dreams in words. Very often strange things happen
- to us in our dreams and we have a very hard time describing them.
- For example, we have all had the experience in a dream of being, say,
- in a house and walking from one part of the house to another but
- all of a sudden finding ourself in the supermarket or some such thing!
- We went to walk into the kitchen, but we find ourselves somewhere
- completely different and no longer in the house! This has happened to
- me a lot in my dreams and all of you can probably recall such
- things happening in your own dreams. The thing is, what do you
- call it when this happens? It's happened to all of us in a dream,
- but we have no word for it! Shall we say, "I *blipped* from the
- house to the supermarket"? Or, "I disappeared from the house but
- suddenly appeared in the supermarket"? Robert Monroe would say
- he "skipped" from the house to the supermarket.
-
- Now, the point is, this is something that has happened to all of
- us, yet we have no word to describe it. And I picked this particular
- example of "blipping" because you will find yourself "blipping"
- quite a bit when you are in the OOBE realm. But, what do we call
- this? How do we describe it?
-
- Basically, we are left with a real problem. Our language has
- no *consensus* terms to describe such experiences. Thus, our
- only solution is to make up a word to describe the experience.
- This is why I use terms like "lockmold", "void" or "blinking
- on and off" in my journal, because I am making up words to
- describe experiences for which our language has no word, and
- even more importantly, for which there is no counterpart
- in our physical experience.
-
- What all this means is that you really have to be careful when
- reading about people's experiences in the OOBE realm. If you
- try to interpret these experiences in terms of physical experience
- or in terms of our normal everyday language, you will get a very
- INACCURATE picture of what is going on. You also have to be a
- careful reader when reading of the OOBE realm. You have to
- really use your imagination and attempt to understand what
- stange words like "ring" or "lockmold" could mean, and why the
- author is describing his/her experience in that fashion. Finally,
- you have to be open to the fact that anything is possible in the OOBE
- realm. So many strage things can occur there that are completly
- different than what we know here in physical life, that you just
- have to keep a very open mind.
-
-
-
- 2. The State Of Your Mind In The OOBE State
-
- So, not only does our language create a barrier to under-
- standing the nature of the OOBE realm, but we are faced with a second
- major obstacle in understanding the OOBE state. As I said above,
- during an OOBE YOUR CONSCIOUSNESS IS DIFFERENT FROM WHAT IT IS
- IN THE PHYSICAL WORLD. Remember, I have defined OOBEs/astral
- projections/lucid dreams as a state in which you take your waking
- personality into the dream world. However, in actual fact, during
- any OOBE you never take your waking self 100% into the dream world.
- Instead you take some PORTION of it into the dream world. In effect,
- when you project you are MIXING YOUR WAKING PERSONALITY WITH YOUR DREAM
- PERSONALITY. And this is why your consciousness is not exactly the same
- as it is when you are awake here in this world. Not only are you
- in a realm that is completely foreign to you, but you are never
- wholly you over there. Believe me, this is very true, and it creates
- very subtle changes in your reactions, thoughts and emotional responses
- to what you experience in the OOBE realm and how you behave there.
- This is all I'm going to say about your state of mind during
- an OOBE for now. As I go more into specific things below, we
- will have occasion to see the subtle differences in awareness
- that occur during an OOBE. Right now I am only drawing your
- attention to this fact. After I go into more detail about
- other aspects of the OOBE realm, we will at the very end of these
- notes come back to this topic. For after all, aside from actually
- learning how to get there, the actual state of your consciousness
- during an OOBE is the most important thing there is - for this is
- the meat and potatoes of it all: you are experiencing a completely
- different state of consciousness! Think about it.
-
-
-
- 3. The OOBE World: Objective or Subjective?
-
- Now, we have one last consideration before I start describing
- what happens during an OOBE. I've already stated that during an
- OOBE your personality is "outside" of you and that subjective
- things can be completely real and objective in the OOBE realm.
- What this means is we are left with a weird problem when trying
- to understand experiences in the OOBE realm. Basically, is it real
- or is it merely subjective fantasy? Well, we could debate whether
- OOBEs are objective or subjective experiences till we are blue
- in the face. It doesn't matter if, in some abstract sense, the
- OOBE realm is objective or subjective. What matters is that when
- you astral project, it WILL BE COMPLETELY REAL TO YOU. Like I said,
- it will be YOU, and you will be SOMEWHERE, doing SOMETHING. Whether
- it's all occurring in your imagination or not is beside the point.
-
- However, what is critically important for you to keep in mind
- when you astral project is that YOU CANNOT ASSUME THAT WHAT YOU
- EXPERIENCE IS OBJECTIVE AND NEITHER CAN YOU ASSUME IT IS PURELY
- SUBJECTIVE. Whatever the nature of the OOBE experience, you
- will be somewhere where the subjective can become objective and the
- objective can become subjective.
-
-
-
- 4. The Dweller At The Threshold
-
- The above discussion leads me now to share with you information
- that was very important to me when I first started projecting. I
- had a book by an author whose name I think was Sepherial. I can't
- even remember anymore, it's been so long since I've seen this book,
- which I gave to a friend years ago. At any rate, this book was about
- how to become an occultist. The first important thing Sepherial said
- you have to do to become a worthwhile occultist is to overcome fear.
- He said that you overcome fear by studying it. As you learn what
- causes you to fear things, you can overcome these fears. He even
- pointed out that if you carefully observe yourself when you get
- afraid, you will notice that fear begins as a kind of tighening in
- your chest by your heart. The tightening begins at your heart
- and then spreads from there down to your gut and into your arms and
- legs. Frankly, once I started watching myself get afraid, I was
- really surprised to see that he was correct.
- Sepherial went on to explain how it's really important to realize
- that fear is something we create in our own minds and that if we are
- to get involved in occult things, we must learn NOT to fear things
- anymore. You can replace fear with understanding. When you under-
- stand something, you no longer need to fear it. If it is truly a
- dangerous thing, but you understand it, you will not fear it, you
- will avoid and respect it. And there are other things we fear that,
- in reality, are not dangerous things. These are the worst kinds
- of fear for an occultist to have. These are fears you have created
- in your own mind, for whatever reasons. These fears are like weeds
- that grow in the garden of your mind, and you should eliminate these.
- Well, this was my first lesson in occultism. I read Sepherial's
- book at about the same time I started astral projecting. I took
- Sepherial's advice to heart, and it was a good thing too because my
- first few times astral projecting were lessons in overcoming
- fear.
-
- There are two types of fear I have experienced astral projecting.
- It is possible that you may experience these types of fear too, so I
- will explain them for you.
- The first type of fear is completely harmless. My very first
- astral projections occurred spontaneously about 5 years before I
- even realized they were astral projections. At the time, I thought
- they were merely strange dreams. In retrospect, they were
- definitely astral projections. What had happened is that I had
- laid down to nap. Next thing I knew I was spinning around the
- ceiling of my bedroom! I was amazed. I didn't have the slightest
- idea what was happening to me, and what was even weirder was that
- I was completely terrified. I was scared to death. But it was a
- very strange sensation; I was afraid, but I had no reason to be afraid,
- in spite of the fact that I was mysteriously spinning around on
- my ceiling! Mostly I was extremly curious as to what was happening
- to me and my experience turned into a contest between my fear
- and my curiosity. Finally, after about 30 seconds of this, my fear
- won, and the next thing I knew I was sitting awake in bed. I was
- not afraid at all when I woke but I was just very curious. My second
- projection was identical to this and happened around the same
- time the first one did (I was about 15 years old when this occurred).
- I promptly forgot these experiences till many years later.
- I was 22 years old when I learned about astral projecting.
- Eventually it occurred to me that maybe those experiences I had years
- before were astral projections. If this was the case, that I had
- actually astral projected before, then this meant I could probably do it
- again. And it was then that I consciously started to astral project.
- When I first started projecting, I used the trance method I described
- above. Actually, I made up this method as I went along. Originally,
- I would lay in bed and simply tell myself I was going to astral
- project as I drifted off to sleep at night. After a number of
- attempts at this, it worked! I became conscious of myself AFTER
- I had fallen asleep! And, just like years before, I felt that same
- feeling of terror, and, as before, there was absolutely no reason
- for this feeling. I got this same feeling of fear on my next two
- attempts as well, but on my third attempt, it was gone, and it has
- never returned.
- I don't know what this feeling of fear was. As I said,
- it was just there on my first few attempts, then it went away. I
- have a friend who is also a competent astral projector and he said a
- similar thing happened to him. I have always suspected that this
- feeling of fear had something to do with separating my consciousness
- from my body, as if it was a purely instinctive response of my awareness
- to operating without using my physical body. But once I got used
- to the sensation of being out-of-body, the fear response just went away.
- Again, I think this may be some type of PURELY HARMLESS instinct
- that occurs soley because of dissociating your awareness from its
- body.
- It's important to point out that you may never experience this
- type of a fear response. In the time I have been on CompuServe, I have
- spoken with a number of very good astral projectors and they have never
- reported this response. Still, I have had it and so has my friend,
- so I am describing it here so that if it happens to you, you will
- know what is going on. If, the first time you leave your body,
- you feel complete terror for no reason at all, then you are having
- this reaction. Don't let it bother you because it will go away
- after your first few times out-of-body.
-
- Ok, now for the second type of fear that I have had to deal
- with in my astral projections. Very early in my projection experiences
- I went through something I call my "Darkside Episodes". These were
- absolutely terrifying experiences for me too, but unlike those
- described above, there WAS a reason for my fear and terror.
- Here are excerpts from my DarkSide experiences:
-
- 1>
-
- "All I can remember now is that somehow I left my body, or
- became lucid in the dream state, whichever you prefer...
- (I went though a number of experiences, then...)
- ...Somehow that I can't now recall, I was outside my body again.
- This time I was standing in my bedroom. I was surprised because
- it seemed to be daytime outside, but I knew it was nighttime and
- that I was actually sleeping on my bed. I noticed that where my
- west wall normally was that there was another room beyond it,
- like the wall had disappeared and there was this room there
- instead. I floated into the room and could look into my bedroom.
- I noticed that I had hands and arms and legs and that I was
- floating a foot or so off the ground. I was moving my body around
- just marvelling in the sensation of my lucidity. I began to feel
- elated. I started to call out and experienced the same thing that
- happened the other night. I could hear my voice in my mind and it
- sounded perfectly normal, but when I actually tried to talk, it
- came out in slow motion.
- I was really feeling great and had been playing with these things
- for a few moments when all of a sudden I began to feel trepid and
- a little paranoid. It felt like I was being watched. I looked up
- into my room and saw a tall dark figure standing in my window. My
- windows were open as if they were doors and this figure was standing
- there on the windowsill looking at me. I didn't know what to think
- at first. The figure was of a male, tall and skinny, and pitch black,
- more like a silhouette than anything else. I'd have thought it was a
- shadow except it had these vivid evil looking completely red eyes.
- It didn't have pupils or anything, just these evil looking eye slits
- that were totally red. At first I thought it couldn't see me, but as
- if in response to my thought, it turned and stared directly at me.
- Then I became afraid. I didn't know what I should do. It slowly
- seemed to move towards me, and I made my way back to my bed,
- thinking that I should jump back into my body and wake up. I
- hovered over to my bed and this thing was slowly coming at me.
- Then I remembered something from one of the first occult books that
- I had ever read [This is the Sepherial book I'm referring to here].
- In this book the author gave a magic phrase for the student to say
- to protect himself from evil forces. The author claimed that it
- was a very potent spell from the times of ancient Atlantis. The
- spell was in some unknown language and I didn't know what it meant,
- but at the time I had memorized it [though I no longer remember
- it], and it seemed like now was as good a time as any to use it!
- So I repeated the spell in my mind and the wildest things happened.
- I was surprised as **** that it worked! At least it did something,
- for now I was laying half way out of my body, the dark figure had
- disappeared, and now there was this, what seemed to me to be like
- a very fake looking mannequin up over me. It had the face of a
- cartoon alligator and I was biting its arm, but it looked just like
- a mannequin and wasn't doing anything. It had a stupid, goofy look
- on its face.
- But I was panicking, attacking its arm and trying like hell to
- wake myself up. I kept trying to shake myself, thinking that if
- I could move my body then I'd wake up. The strangest thing happened.
- As I shook myself, I could feel myself "sink" into my physical body,
- and weird as this sounds I could see two distinct visual fields at
- once. They didn't overlap though, one was on top of the other, as
- if my visual field were cut in two. The top one was my visual field
- in my projection of my day lit bedroom, and the bottom field was my
- dark bedroom at night. There was even a definite line of demarcation
- between the two view fields. My vision was literally split in
- half! It was the absolutely strangest sensation! And as I struggled
- to shake myself, I could feel myself pull down to the lower view of
- my bedroom, and the top view seemed to go up and out of my visual
- field. But then I would relax momentarily and I would start to rise
- up, just like when one is under water and starts to float toward the
- surface, and I was being pulled back up into the top scene. Then
- I would begin to struggle and shake myself again, and pull back down.
- This happened about four times; I would think that I was out of the
- top view and begin to relax and quit shaking and rocking myself, and
- the moment I would stop, I would feel myself being pulled back into
- the top visual field. I was scared as hell and thought I was
- trapped. Finally though, I shook and shook and shook myself and
- I actually woke up.
- I was laying still on my bed. For all the shaking and moving I was
- doing, I thought when I awoke that my body would be moving around as
- much. But it wasn't; it was very still. I laid there scared as hell.
- I had the strangest paranoia that at any moment something evil was
- going to jump out of my walls and stab me to death, the same feeling
- I felt before. I didn't know what had just happened to me. Who the
- hell was that dark figure? For some reason it really spooked me bad."
- (END OF ENTRY)
-
- Well, that was my Darkside experience. I was very scared after
- that. I was afraid to project even. Was that thing going to always
- come and haunt me in my projections? What was it?
- Again, I turned to my friend who could also astral project.
- We discussed my experience. After thinking about it for a week
- or so, I came to the conclusion that the Darkside was me! I
- figured that maybe what was happening is that somehow, everything
- that was bad about me appeared OUTSIDE OF ME in my projections.
- Maybe this thing was just all my own badness embodied as a being
- coming to haunt me in the astral projection state. Whether this
- is true or not, this is what I decided to believe. And since it
- was me, then I really didn't have to fear it, because that would
- mean I was afraid of myself! So I decided that what I should do
- is become more aware of all my badness and quit being that way,
- then, maybe this thing would go away. And I figured that if I
- met this Darkside in my projections again, then I would confront
- it instead of being afraid of it. I would stand up to it, and
- battle it if I had to.
- So, that's what I decided. Here's what happened the next time
- I projected:
-
- 2>
-
- "I know I went to sleep with the intent to project. Since
- my "darkside" episode, I was leary to project again, but now I
- felt that I understood what this being was and I felt confident
- to face it if I needed to.
- (I went though some other adventures, then...)
- I was back in my bedroom again, still lucid in the projection
- state. I noticed that it was daytime outside, though I also knew I
- was sleeping in my bed and it was really night on the physical plane.
- But then I noticed that there was a doorway in my bedroom wall, one
- that was not there physically. So I went through the door and
- began to explore.
- The doorway lead into a castle and I was very surprised by this.
- I remember thinking to myself that rooms have all these hidden
- directions in them in the astral plane. It was a huge and elegantly
- decorated place and the decor looked fairly modern. I wandered
- about and eventually came to a room that had a window that was
- overlooking a long shingled roof. I climbed through the window
- and there was a girl outside on the roof. It was sunny outside
- and I felt very good. Me and the girl talked, but I do not remember
- what we talked about. I could see around me outside, what
- looked like a fairly typical, though completely unfamiliar,
- neighborhood and I was curious to explore it. I went to fly off
- the roof but my lockmold began to weaken and I blacked out.
- I was back in my bedroom again, still lucid in the dream state.
- The doorway to the castle was still there, but this time there
- was a pitch black figure sitting crumpled on the floor at the
- end of my bed. It was the darkside! I became leary and slightly
- scared, but I remembered my resolve to confront it. Also, this
- time it looked feeble, sitting in a heap at the foot of my bed,
- almost like a mannequin. I approached it slowly saying, "What do you
- want from me? Who are you? Are you me? I love you." My fear was
- quickly diminishing as I approached it, but it did not move. It
- seemed dead. I grabbed it by the head and looked directly into
- its face, all the while telling it "I love you." Its face was
- utterly lifeless, its eyes dried out gaping holes. I clenched
- its head and crushed it like a dried out husk, all the while
- yelling at it, telling it I loved it. I crushed its head
- completely to dust, knowing that this was only the embodiment
- of my inability to look squarely at myself. This was all my
- fear, all my hatred, all my self-hate and I was crushing it to
- dust and a great joy filled me. I kicked the lifeless heap and
- felt a triumphant sense run through me. My darkside was dead!
- I became like a little child and ran through the door into the
- castle, running about hooting and hollering, excited with the
- thrill of my victory.
- I ran back into my bedroom still elated and making much noise.
- The crumbled figure was still there and I looked at it with utter
- disregard. "You're dead," I was yelling at it, and I was jumping
- up and down yahooing...."
-
- (END OF ENTRY)
-
-
- So, that's how that situation worked itself out! Reading this
- now, I almost seem neurotic in this projection. But think of it:
- how would you feel? You learn to project only to have your new found
- ability foiled by some pitch black terror? No way!
- Given the fact that I have never since encountered this
- Darkside during a projection, or anything like it, I take it to
- mean that I was correct. This Darkside I encountered in my earliest
- projections was all the bad in me coming to haunt me while I was
- out-of-body. THIS is one among a few experiences I have had
- that makes me warn you that when you project, things that are
- inside you on the physical plane (i.e. subjective things) appear
- to be outside of you on the astral plane (i.e. objective things).
- A year after my darkside experience, I was surprised to
- read in a Manly Hall book about a thing called "The Dweller
- on the Threshold". Manly Hall described this "Dweller" as the
- very first thing waiting on the path to greet the aspiring
- occultist. He essentially described this Dweller to be exactly
- what I realized my Darkside to be: all of the badness in ones
- personality manifested as a being. So, basically, I quite
- literally met the Dweller on my threshold very shortly after
- I learned how to leave my body. Manly Hall's book was also
- a warning to the aspiring occultist that you must overcome fear
- and ignorance, and seek self-insight and seek the good inside your
- self and weed out the bad.
- Now, the important question of course is: will this happen to
- you? Will you learn to enter the OOBE state only to meet your
- "Dweller on the Threshold"? Well, again, I have spoken with a
- number of projectors here on CompuServe who have never had this
- experience. I do not know if you will encounter such an
- embodiment of the bad in your personality when you learn to
- leave your body. We all grow and mature in different ways.
- It is very easy to realize that not everybody needs to go through
- such an experience in the OOBE state. But will you? I don't know.
- You won't know either until you are out there. I share this
- experience with you just in case it does happen to you. I share
- this so that you will know what that figure is and how to get rid
- of it. It is you, and by opening up to what that figure stands
- for you will get rid of it. Any "Dweller on the Threshold"
- is that kind of fear I mentioned above, the kind that is not
- caused by real danger but is created in your imagination, for
- whatever reason. Look at that fear, try to understand it, and
- you will have conquered your Dweller on the Threshold.
- Again, to drive the point home, there is a very strong
- element of self-therapy to the OOBE state, and the above is
- a very definite example of this. Like I said, you must appreciate
- that subjective and objective things turn into each other
- in the OOBE realm.
-
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 7
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_08.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 8 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 2
-
-
-
- Ok, at this point, we are going to begin the "travel
- brochure" description of the OOBE realm. As I said very early
- in these notes, once you begin to overcome the influence of
- your subconscious impinging on your projections, you will indeed
- discover a vast world of things to see and explore. There are
- many, many places to go in the planes and many inhabitants you
- can meet and interact with. I will write this section,
- by providing an overview of a topic and then giving some examples
- out of my journal to illustrate whatever I am discussing. As
- well, I will intersperse helpful hints and suggestions about what
- to do in particular cases throughout the following discussions.
-
-
-
- 5. Things You Can Do There That You Can't Do Here
-
- The first thing I want to discuss about being in the OOBE
- realm is what you can do there that you cannot do here in
- the physical plane. This includes such things as flying, moving
- through walls and using psychic powers. Throughout the following
- discussions, though I will not explicitly say "do this or do that",
- you should keep in mind that anything I describe is fair game for
- things you too can try once you are out-of-body. Feel free
- to imitate anything you read about here or in any astral
- projection book. This is how I learned; by trying to do what
- authors described or suggested in their writings, or by copying
- what they did.
-
-
-
- A. Moving, Flying and the "Wind"
-
- One thing you can do during an OOBE is fly. You can also
- float. Moving around during an OOBE is much different than
- moving around in the physical plane. When I first started
- projecting I just kind of floated around, mostly unaware
- of any body sensations at all. My first sense of movement
- in my earliest projections was that I *willed* myself to move
- by pushing forward. The pushing sensation seemed to originate
- from my heart region. Here is an exerpt from my journal of how this
- motion felt:
-
- 1>
- (Note: this projection occurred before my Darkside projections)
-
- "I woke into the dream state, after laying awake for about two
- hours convincing myself that I would wake up in my dream. When I
- became lucid I could see my room in front of me perfectly, as if
- my eyes were open, but I knew they were not. I thought, "Oh my
- God, here it is! I'm gonna go up to J.C.'s room." The first
- thing I noticed was that there was no fear response in me. This
- made me very happy and I had a feeling very much like "dive head
- first into the situation", "go for it!", "push on through". The
- result was that I pushed myself up out of my body.
-
- I was absolutely startled at how clear my perceptions were and
- at how much my dream bedroom was exactly like my "real" bedroom,
- right down to the books on my bookshelf! I tried to turn around
- and look at my body but it wouldn't work. The part of my room
- where I was laying on my bed defied my attempts to turn in that
- direction. As I tried to turn around, this direction would turn
- with me and constantly stay behind me. I found this confusing,
- but in my enthusiasm gave up the attempt and went on to other
- things.
-
- I remembered to try to go to John's room as we had planned. I
- turned and looked at my door. It was closed. I turned away
- and looked again, and now it was open. Happy and surprised, I
- pushed through. By now I had become quite aware of my mode of
- locomotion and it was clear that I was not walking. I seemed
- to be floating, without legs or feet. Movement seemed to result
- simply by me thinking of moving. And the source of the force
- for the motion seemed to emanate from my heart or thoracic region.
- I even looked for a silver cord but saw none (and never have to
- this day)...."
-
- (END OF ENTRY)
-
-
- If you recall from my Darkside journal entries, I was excited
- because I discovered I had arms, legs, hands and feet during this
- projection. From then on out I quit using the pushing motion
- described above.
- Of course, you CAN walk during a projection, presuming you feel
- a body, but floating and flying become the preferred method of getting
- around. Now, there are some weird things about moving during
- an OOBE that you should be aware of. Whether you are walking or
- flying sometimes you will find that it is very hard to move.
- You have probably actually experienced the sensation I am
- about to describe in your dreams. Have you ever had a dream where
- you were running but, no matter how hard you tried, it was
- very difficult to move your body? Maybe you were being
- chased by something threatening, but it felt as if you were
- moving in slow motion. If you have ever felt this kind of
- sensation during a dream, well, it also occurs during OOBEs.
- You may see somewhere that you want to go in your OOBE, but
- as you move towards it, you will find it harder and harder to
- move. There is a chance that you may even lose your lockmold
- and fade out of the projection if you try to force it too far.
- There is a classic book on astral projection by Ophiel called
- "The Art and Practice of Astral Projection" where Ophiel describes
- this same thing of how it may be hard to move sometimes. Ophiel
- puts forth the idea that what is happening to cause your
- movement to become more difficult is that you are transferring
- your consciousness from one subplane to another. Now, I don't
- necessarily know if this is what is happening or not, and I
- really don't know why this happens. My point here is to simply
- point out that it DOES happen during an OOBE. What should you do
- if this happens? Below I will have some journal entries that address
- this issue.
- Another thing you will encounter in the OOBE realm has to
- with flying. Simply stated, you cannot always fly whenever
- you want to. Sometimes you will go to fly and zoom right up
- into the air. Other times you may only float a couple feet upwards
- but stop. Still other times, you may try to fly but nothing at all
- happens. Again, I don't have the slightest idea why this is the case.
- Sometimes you can do things that will help you fly when you are having
- trouble launching yourself, and I will provide some journal entries
- illustrating what you can do.
- Now, presuming you can fly, what should you do? One good suggestion
- is try to fly into outerspace. One author (Greene) describes how he
- has visited all the planets in the Solar System while out-of-body.
- Personally, I have only gotten into outerspace a couple times and I
- will list one of these entries below. Often, I will fly up into the
- air (if there is air in the OOBE realm!) just to get a good look at
- where I am at. Sometimes, very strange things happen when you fly.
- Once for example, I flew up into the sky, and the sky itself seemed
- to turn into a room. I could have flown into this room, but did not.
- This entry will be listed below.
- Finally, there is one last thing to mention about moving during
- your OOBE. This is something I have encountered many, many times.
- What happens is it seems like a gust of wind will grab you and pull
- you along. It is almost as if some kind of magnetic force or
- something has captured you and is pulling you. I will list entries
- describing this too.
- To summarize, here is a list of what you can expect when it
- comes to locomotion during your OOBE:
-
- 1. You CAN move without a body, as in the entry I listed
- above
-
- 2. You can walk, fly or float during an OOBE. Sometimes
- you may experience difficulty in moving.
-
- 3. You might experience a wind force pulling you along.
-
- Now, here are some journal entries illustrating these things:
-
- 2>
- (An example of the wind force - this entry is part of
- my Darkside projection.)
-
- "...I remember becoming lucid and jumping out of my body. I stood
- in my bedroom wondering what I should do, where I should try to
- go. I decided I wanted to see if I could make it all the way to
- Detroit and visit a girlfriend of mine. As soon as I thought this,
- and made up my mind that I was going to do it, a strong wind came
- out of nowhere and began to drag me along. I was thoroughly
- baffled and had no idea what was going on. Yet this wind pulled
- me along, backwards, and I remember moving very quickly through
- the walls of the house outside. I passed houses for a short while
- and then was being pulled through the forest, passing mostly pine
- trees. I was wondering if this wind was going to take me all the
- way to Detroit. For a while I relaxed and let it drag me along..."
-
-
- 3>
- (Here is an example of finding it hard to move.)
-
- "...Went back into it and jumped out of my body again. I flew
- outside through the wall and went by my window. I looked in the
- window and saw myself lying there on the bed! My fan was
- conspicuously missing from the window, but the me on the bed stared
- back and waved at the me outside the window. I wasn't too taken
- aback by this because Greene mentioned that one could see one's
- other bodies. I flew up onto the roof. It was bumpy, and I had
- a hard time climbing onto it (like when it becomes difficult
- running in a dream). I finally managed to pull myself up onto
- it and I stood there looking out over the backyard. Everything
- looked quite normal, but then these pillar like things seemed to
- fade into appearance..."
-
- 4>
- (Here's an example of flying into outerspace. Note too
- that in this entry I meet a "friendly spirit". Meeting
- spirits will be discussed ahead.)
-
- "...I was outside again, me and invisible John and the idea
- occurred to me to fly into outer space. (a suggestion from Greene's
- book). I raced upwards calling after John to follow. I sped
- upwards rapidly and it seemed J.C. couldn't keep up. As I rose I
- looked down hoping to see the terrain unfold below me. What I saw
- was not what I expected. Below me was a globe but it was not the
- Earth that we see in pictures. The surface of the globe was covered
- with strange and complex geometric patterns of various colors and
- the whole scene had the texture of a cartoon. A vast light seemed
- to be sweeping across the surface. As I rose higher and higher, I
- soon lost control and blacked out. I was back on the ground again,
- by the fort, and decided to try again. I shot upwards and at an
- incredible speed and soon felt myself "blinking on and off" again.
- But much to my surprise, a large hand reached out to me and I
- grabbed onto it. Suddenly I felt myself being pulled upwards
- though my vision was fading in and out.
- Though I couldn't see who was pulling me, I had the impression
- that it was some friendly spirit helping me out. In moments I
- stopped moving up and struggled to regain my vision. I felt like
- I was very high up and, when I could see it seemed that I was standing
- on a cloud. I couldn't see well around me but I remember managing to
- look downward. There only seemed to be clouds below, but my vision
- was fading in and out badly now. It seemed as if my spirit friend
- was behind me. At one point I caught a glimpse of my friend and I.
- We were standing on a cloud and we were both playing guitar and
- smiling. Finally I lost control and felt myself in bed. I laid
- gathering the memories of this experience together. My lucidity was
- not as great as it has been but I had never experienced such a variety
- of travels in one projection before. I felt very light when I got out
- of bed. The feeling lasted for maybe 10 minutes."
-
- 5>
- (Another example of finding it hard to move. This entry
- illustrates one solution when you find it hard to move-
- just MOVE SLOWELY)
-
- "...I climbed out. Saw my physical body laying on my bed.
- Went outside. Flew upwards. Lost vision. Woke up.
- Relaxed. Climbed back out. Went out through my bedroom
- door. It was nice and sunny outside. I remember noticing that
- I was naked. Climbed up onto the roof like Spiderman, I thought.
- When I got on the roof over my bedroom, I looked out across the
- street (which does not exist on the physical plane). There was
- a row of very quaint houses of a typically American design. One
- in particular had a very bright blue roof that caught my attention.
- I remember now that if I tried to proceed too quickly I lost my
- lock mold. So I slowly jumped off the roof and slowly walked
- across the street. It was "topsey turvey" when I moved like there
- were little hills where there were none in sight. This made it
- difficult to move and my movements felt slow and sluggish. Still,
- I just plodded on very carefully and slowly. I made it across the
- street and I went up the driveway of the above mentioned house..."
-
-
- 6>
- (Another example of the wind force. Note here also some
- things we will discuss ahead: first, where I go, and second
- how I make some mischief. Where I went here was I believe,
- a place where people go when they die. I will discuss this
- ahead. I will also discuss making mischief ahead.)
-
- "...I flew through the wall into a second room and this room was
- darker but there was a neon purple color filling the room. I landed
- on the floor and there was someone there. A woman and a dwarf (or
- a child), if I recall correctly. I spoke with them for a few moments
- but I don't remember what was said. All of a sudden, a strong
- astral current grabbed me and started pulling me along backwards. I
- went passive and let it pull me. I wondered if maybe it would
- take me to Joey. But I knew she was in California and I didn't
- really think the force would pull me that far. I wanted to try
- to turn myself around to try to see what was pulling me, then I
- thought better of doing this cause I figured I'd wake myself up.
- The force was pulling me backwards and I was in a sitting
- position facing the opposite direction in which I was being pulled.
- Soon I saw that I was passing through walls, one after another,
- very quickly. From what glimpses I could catch, it seemed like
- I was passing through apartments, as if I was being pulled along
- through an apartment building. I passed through many apartments and
- saw many people doing many things. I recall in particular zipping
- through a kitchen and a man and woman were there either preparing
- food or putting away groceries. As I zipped by, they both saw me
- and had startled looks on their faces and the guy dropped whatever
- he was holding on to. I thought this was funny.
- Soon, the images of apartments stopped though I was still being
- dragged along. I went through a big wall and it now seemed that I
- was in a dormitory. The force pulling me was weakening and I
- suspected that I was reaching my destination, whatever that might
- be. The dorm rooms I was being pulled through were very big, like
- gymnasiums and there were giant bunk-beds, a few in each room.
- There were young people about my age (22) all about, some laying
- reading on their huge beds, others involved in other activities.
- The force was weak enough now that I could turn around. I
- saw two guys sitting on a bed eating candy. I yelled out to them,
- "Hey, watch this!", and I swooped down, as I was still being pulled
- along, and grabbed a handful or their candy. They seemed very
- miffed about this, but I quickly disappeared through a wall and was
- out of their sight. I remember that all of the young people I saw
- looked very avante garde with punk rock haircuts, wearing "trendy"
- clothes, like the New York art scene or something.
- Finally, I felt the current really weaken and it stopped
- pulling me along, and I glided to the ground. I was standing in a
- smaller room and there was another room off to my side with big
- picture windows along the wall, looking outside...."
-
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
- So, those are some examples of locomotion during an OOBE.
- Now, as I said above, if you find it hard to move, just go slowly.
- Also, if you find it difficult to fly, that is, say you go to fly
- away but instead only drift up a couple feet, here is what you can
- do; PRETEND YOU ARE WALKING UP STAIRS. I have found that this
- works for me. If I take big steps upward, I will continue to
- ascend. This works good when you can fly a little bit, but not
- very well.
-
-
-
-
- B. Moving through walls
-
- Next of course, is the well known trick of passing through
- walls. Often during your OOBEs you do not need to use doors to
- exit from a place, you can pass right through the wall. However,
- just like with flying, this only works sometimes. Again, I don't
- know why it only works sometimes, but that is what I have discovered.
- One thing to try to do if you cannot pass through a wall is to
- turn around and try to pass through backwards. This is what Greene
- recommends and I have found it to work on a number of occasions.
- However, sometimes even this does not work and all you can do
- is smash the wall down, which is what the following entries
- illustrate.
-
- 7>
-
- "...All I could see as an escape route were the windows to our
- left. The windows were sunk back and about 7 feet off the ground.
- There were a series of pipes blocking the way so I hovered up into
- the air. The children seemed amazed to watch me fly. I turned and
- flew between the pipes up to the window. I tried to pass through
- the window but could not. I tried turning around and doing the same,
- it didn't work. I tried to lunge through the adjacent wall, and that
- didn't work either. So I smashed the window with my hand and broke
- it. It took about 4 or 5 smashes till I made a safe hole to climb
- through. Nothing happened to my hand when I smashed the glass.
- I climbed with some trouble out the window..."
-
-
- 8>
- (This example illustrates the "blipping" I spoke of earlier.
- You don't always go where you want to during an OOBE as you
- can see from this example.)
-
- "...I made my way into the adjacent kitchen. I saw through
- a window up over the sink that it was raining outside, and I could
- feel that pleasant fresh feeling that one feels on warm and sunny
- rainy days. I was really surprised that it rained on the astral
- plane and that it felt so similar to what it's like on the physical
- plane. I really wanted to go outside and feel the rain for myself.
- I tried to pass through the wall to get outside but I couldn't. I
- tried to go forward and backward, but just couldn't pass through
- the wall. The window was open, but there was a screen blocking
- my way. I tried to open the screen but couldn't, so I decided to
- tear the window out. I smashed through it but the hole was too
- small to crawl through, so I tore away the wall around the window.
- But the hole was still too small to pass through! So I tore down
- the whole kitchen wall! I figured, hell, it was just somebody's
- thought-form anyway, and they could reconstruct it easy enough!
- Now the hole was big enough to climb through and I jumped through
- it. But I wasn't outside! Instead, I was in a strange and unfamiliar
- hallway. I turned around and the kitchen with the hole in the wall
- was gone! There was just a door there now..."
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
- You can also see from this last example how space does NOT
- always behave in the OOBE realm the way it behaves here in the
- physical plane. I had ripped the whole window out, and you'd have
- thought I'd be able to climb through the hole, but I could not!
- I really did end up tearing down the whole kitchen wall before
- I could get through the hole I made! Of course, this doesn't make
- any sense when we think of it in physical terms, and I was confused
- about this during my projection. We can also see here another example
- of making mischief during an OOBE. It's not very common to go
- destroying walls in strange houses here on the physical plane!
- Yet, during an OOBE, there is a carefree sense that you can get
- away with anything you want. Monroe calls such behavior "being
- a Wild One". We will talk more about this later.
- So, that's it about moving through walls.
-
-
- C. Exercising psychic powers
-
- Aside from the locomotion tricks discussed above,
- perhaps the most amazing thing you can do during your OOBEs
- is use psychic powers. Almost all the psychic powers described
- can be performed extrodinarily easily during an OOBE. As a matter
- of fact, you will find yourself automatically using psychic powers
- during your projections. What you want to do is RECOGNIZE when
- this is happening, and that is why I am pointing out here that
- this will happen automatically during your OOBEs. Some of the psychic
- powers you will find yourself using during an OOBE are the
- following: seeing visions (or using clairvoaynce), reading minds,
- psychokinesis (moving things with your mind), and even experiencing
- memories of past (and future) lives. Also, strange as this sounds,
- you can have an OOBE while you are having an OOBE! That is, you can
- leave your body while you are projecting! I will give an example
- of this below.
- I had found myself automatically doing some of these things
- but not really understanding what was happening. The first book
- I found that described this possibility was a Seth book called
- "Dreams and Projections of Consciousness" where Seth says flat
- out that you can use psychic abilites while out-of-body.
- After reading this, it was completely clear to me that this was
- indeed true and that I had automatically been doing this all along.
- Since that time I have had many occasions to experiment with these
- abilities while out-of-body.
- And also very important is the fact that you use psychic abilities
- all the time in your dreams. Very often you will mind-read or have
- memories of past lives in dreams, but, since you are not lucid,
- it seems like no big deal during the dream. If however, you make
- the attempt to remember your dreams as I prescribed earlier in the
- notes, you will find yourself remembering occurrences of you using
- psychic abilites during your dreams. I will also list here an
- example of me using psychic abilities in one of my dreams.
- Finally, I should also say that, once you start astral projecting
- you will find that you will astral project from within your dreams.
- You will be in a dream, and in the dream you will get the idea to astral
- project. This is a different phenomena from becoming lucid during
- a dream that we have already discussed. When you become lucid
- during a dream, you will still be in the same dream, only now
- you will be lucid. When you astral project from a dream you will
- LEAVE the dream you were in and enter a projection. Often, when you
- wake up from the projection you will be back in the dream that you
- had left and you will NOT realize that you are dreaming. This is
- a weird situation to be in, but it has happened to me many times.
- Two of my entries below will illustrate doing this.
- Here are some examples from my journal:
-
- 9>
- (Note, this example also illustrates the kinds of denizins
- you will meet in your projections. In this case I meet
- a talking rhinosorous! Here, I am only using this entry
- to illustrate that there seemed to be telepathy between
- me and the rhino. I will discuss meetings the denizins
- of the OOBE realm in the next section.)
-
- "...Suddenly, the suburbs ended and I was at a field. There was a dirt
- road winding through it, and woods off in the distance. I landed
- and began walking along the dirt path. There was a fork in the
- path ahead of me, and standing there was a little rhinoceros.
- It was about four feet tall and was wearing a french barrette
- on its head. I approached the rhino, and it looked at me and
- said "Do you need a ride?" I was surprised that it talked but
- was pleased with its congeniality. I said, "sure." So I climbed
- on its back and we trotted off into the woods. I began to sing
- and the rhino sang with me. I was singing a Led Zeppelin song
- ("You need coolin', baby I'm not fooling...), and the rhino was
- singing along with me. It was interesting, as if the rhino could
- read my thoughts, and pick the words and melody out of my mind to
- sing along..."
-
-
- 10>
- (This is an example of me using telepathy in a dream)
-
- "This experience was a dream. I'm including it here because, in
- this dream, I unquestionably utilized telepathy. Telepathy is the
- direct reading of another person's mind. Seth says in his books
- (those books produced by Jane Roberts and Robert Butts) that we
- all very naturally use psychic abilities in our dreams, abilities
- that we do not normally use in our waking life. He says that we
- usually aren't aware that we are using these psychic abilities
- because we make no reasonable attempts to remember our dream life,
- let alone pay attention well enough when we are actually dreaming
- to recognize that we are doing something that would seem very
- abnormal if we were to be doing it while we were awake here in
- the physical plane. This dream is a perfect illustration of the
- utilization of psychic abilities in a dream, and, and such, it is
- also wonderful confirmation of Seth's ideas.
- I had been at a picnic. I walked into the house where the picnic
- was at, and upon entering the door I was now in the laboratory.
- (an example of blipping!).
- Blaine (who is my boss) was asking me if I had completed the
- experiment yet. I told him I had just set it up. Now, from my
- standpoint as a chemist, the "reaction" I was running in the dream
- was extremely interesting. What I was doing in the dream involved
- taking a sample of brain DNA (from a dog that had been given a
- heart attack) and placing this DNA on a little machine. This
- machine had on it a screen that magnified the chemical reactions
- taking place and allowed us to directly view what the molecules
- were doing.
- There is no such machine here on the physical plane. I
- often sit here on the physplane and wonder how to make such a
- machine. The one who does will not only become very famous,
- but very rich as well.
- At any rate, Blaine was standing on the other side of the
- lab bench from me watching as I was viewing the screen. Looking
- at the screen I began to realize what was going on in the reaction.
- What I saw was that the DNA was damaged and that it looked like
- fish DNA, not dog DNA. This I was thinking to myself, but Blaine
- literally and directly read this out of my mind. Then I felt
- him think, "It's not the base pairs, it's the structure of the
- entire chromosome." I heard him think this as if it was in my
- head. Then I started thinking, "That's right! It's the
- chromosomes, and the molecules are struggling to reassemble
- themselves. The damage has caused the chromosomes to degenerate
- into that of a fish. But these are dog chromosomes, and they
- are struggling like hell in there to reconstruct themselves into
- dog chromosomes." Then I felt a deep and very sincere sympathy
- come over me for these poor molecules that were in there
- struggling to put themselves back together again, but simply
- couldn't. It was a very strong emotion that I felt. Blaine
- didn't say anything, but it was obvious that he again felt
- directly what I was feeling and thinking. Then I felt his
- thoughts. He was realizing that I was right and then he,
- who is a doctor and sees many suffering heart attack victims,
- realized, or perhaps actually felt for a second, exactly the
- true suffering of people who have had heart attacks. And I
- very clearly felt in my mind and emotions what Blaine was
- feeling and thinking and an overwhelming pity and sorrow
- came over me as I read Blaine's sense of the profound tragedy
- suffered by his heart attack patients. It was with this
- feeling that I woke up."
-
- 11>
- (Here was a short, but what I consider to be an extrodinary
- projection. Here I tried an experiment based on what
- I had read in the Seth books. Note also that
- illustrated here are many other ideas we have discussed.
- Also note that this is an example of astral projecting
- while in a dream, except here, after the projection, I
- actually woke up here on the physical plane and did
- not return to my dream. Also, I use telekinesis in this
- projection to open a window.)
-
- "Seth's ideas guided my thoughts in this one.
- Laid down to nap at 7 PM, tried to leave. Fell asleep and
- dreamed I was playing music. In the dream I decided to go to bed
- and try to project. I had that "headrush" feeling. Then I
- thought to myself, "maybe I'm already here." I opened my eyes
- and was laying on a couch in an unfamiliar living room. It seemed
- my little brother Jim was sleeping in a chair. I stood up looking
- around. I realized, "I *am* here!" I became aware and concerned
- about my stability. Went and looked out the window, considering
- flying outside to explore. Outside it was a windy and chilly
- gray day. I pulled back the window with my mind and climbed out
- on the outer ledge.
- I began recalling some stuff I had read in a Seth book. He
- said we live different lives over here, and that our dream mind
- has memories of its own, distinct from the memories belonging to
- our physical personality. I noticed that I didn't seem to have a
- body. I flew from the window, but then saw a reflection of my body
- in the window. I landed in the front yard but my lockmold was
- wavering. I struggled to hold it.
- Outside reminded me of my brother's house by the lake. When
- I felt sufficiently stable I stood there in the front yard searching
- my memory for memories from my dream mind. I heard a girl say
- something. Then my vision began to fade and in the darkness
- before my eyes I thought I saw outer space. I was fighting to
- keep my lockmold, and I was still searching for dream memories.
- I was thinking to myself, "I want to integrate my waking and dream
- minds." I went to go to hitch hike along the road but faded out.
- Felt myself entering into my body. Felt my awareness of the
- physical plane take over, overwhelming my projection memories. I
- fought to recall this experience. Gathered up the memories then
- laid in bed reflecting on Seth's ideas. His is a very powerful
- approach to understanding. I wonder if the reason I'm "stupider"
- over there has to do with a blurring of waking and dream minds.
- Got out of bed, went and ate, then recorded this."
-
-
-
-
- 12>
- (Here is an example of me using clairvoaynce during an OOBE)
-
- "At some point I stopped whatever I had been doing and tried to
- meditate with the intent to see my chakras. I sat down (with my
- eyes open, looking at myself) and began concentrating on trying
- to see the spectrum of my chakras. Initially, nothing happened.
- But after a few moments, very faint colors appeared at the various
- centers. Then I shut my eyes, and my sight clicked in with my eyes
- closed. I was wearing what I thought was a blue gown with
- golden flowers etched into it, or hanging from it. There were
- very complex etchings throughout the whole robe. There was one
- big flower that was distinctly noticeable, the stem coming out
- from my waist (which I had originally thought was a belt) and
- lying on the floor between my legs. When I saw all this I thought,
- "What's this robe? I wanted to see my chakras!" Then it dawned
- on me that these *were* my chakras. Then I lost consciousness and
- went off into other adventures.
- As I sit here and write, I wonder if that robe was some type
- of representation of my etheric body, displaying the more active
- chakras as flowers, and the complex etchings being the nadis.
- However, I'm not sure."
-
-
- (This discussion continues in FILE 9)
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 8
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_09.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 9 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 3
-
-
-
-
- C. Exercising psychic powers (continued from FILE 8)
-
-
- 13>
- (Here is another example of me astral projecting from a
- dream. What is also interesting here was that during this
- projection I had an amazing clairvoyant vision. After
- the projection, I indeed "woke-up" back in my dream,
- unaware that I was dreaming!)
-
-
- "...My dream involved me, JC and a bunch of other people.
- We were all roommates in a big house. I was unaware that I was
- dreaming. There was a party going on or something. We were
- down in the basement hanging out. However, at some point in
- the dream I looked at JC and told him I'd be back in a little
- bit because I was going to go up to my room and try to project!
- I went up to my bedroom in this dream house. Again, at this
- point I thought everything was normal and had no idea I was dreaming.
- I laid down on my bed and started concentrating to leave just
- exactly like I always do on the physical plane. However, when
- I laid down, shut my eyes and began concentrating, the effect was
- intensely more dramatic than it is on the physical plane. I got
- results almost as soon as I shut my eyes (compared to the 15 to
- 30 minutes it usually seems to take on the physical plane). Still
- I was unaware that I was projecting out of a dream. Instead of
- seeing the "stars" (entopic light) filling the darkness behind
- my closed eyes, the effect was more like when I'm in the void
- during a projection. But, again, at the time I didn't recognize
- this, I only remember it now as I write this entry.
- Then, practically immediately, imagery began to form. What I saw
- looked like a hole forming in the fog. What I thought at the
- moment was that a gateway to the astral plane was forming. I laid
- there trying to transfer my consciousness from my body into this
- gate. The "gate" imagery itself was vivid and well focused,
- kind of a blue swirling mist with stars (little pinpoints of
- light) blinking on and off in it. After a few moments of
- concentration, I was standing at the gate.
- I was floating off the ground in what seemed to be a mist
- filled cave. There was lots of light to see by, and I was
- definitely not in the void. I was standing at the back wall
- of this cave facing the entrance which was about 50 feet ahead
- of me. Beyond the entrance all I could see was mist. Under
- me to my right, was a table with little objects lined up on it.
- Also to my right were objects dangling from strings. Behind
- me were shelves with objects on them. My first impression of these
- thing is that they reminded me of a souvenir stand. I wondered if
- I was in some type of store.
- I landed on the cave floor, which was also covered in mist. I was
- looking about the cave, but I got the feeling of some invisible
- presence. It dawned on my to try something new. I thought to
- myself, "Try to visually focus in the way you do when you are
- hallucinating on acid" (this type of focusing involves a relaxation
- of ones vision, an intentional blurring of the normal visual field
- and a focusing on the entire visual field as opposed to simply
- looking at individual points within this field). I did this and
- immediately got dramatic effects. What I saw was incredible. As
- the image of the cave blurred, I began to perceive images behind,
- or within the cave. The image only lasted for a split second for it was
- difficult to maintain, and worse, what I saw startled me so much
- that, in sheer surprise, I "dropped" my focus (just like how someone
- can drop what they are holding in their hands when they get
- sufficiently startled).
- What I saw was that now I was standing and looking out over a vast
- plateau that seemed to stretch to infinity in all directions. And
- on this plateau there was the most inordinate amount of activity
- and motion that I had ever seen. What I saw were creatures and
- crowds of beings in all directions. And everything had that
- electric, neon self-glowing quality about it. Things that I did
- not know how to conceptualize were moving about in every direction,
- even passing through me! There were herds of things I could
- not recognize, and things that looked like swarms flying about.
- There was an undescribable dance of colors bathing the sky.
- Something as big as a horse seemed to pass right through me!
- It seemed that huge beings were battling in front of me. Even
- to this day I have never seen anything so incredible and
- spectacular. All I could think the moment I had some faint
- glimmer of what I was seeing was "Oh my God! This is *the* Astral
- Plane!" But like I said, the scene was so overwhelming that I
- lost it almost the instant I had some small sense of what
- I was seeing.
- I was standing back in the mist filled cave wondering what
- I had just saw....
- (I then went met a monster in the cave, which lunged
- at me and caused me to lose my lockmold...)
- The shock of its impact was enough to cause my lockmold to
- break. I was back on my bed. But I wasn't on the physical plane.
- I awoke back on my bed in the dream from which I had started. I
- still wasn't in the least bit aware that I was in a dream. At the
- moment, I was laying there pissed at myself for letting that
- monster scare me out of such a dramatic episode. I decided I was
- going to try to leave again. I relaxed and began to concentrate.
- Again, a misty hole broke through the darkness behind my closed eyes.
- This time the gate was of an amorphorous shape, about 5 feet in
- front of me. It looked different than the first one, and was
- colored differently too. It was blackish orange with stars in
- it - like I was looking into outer space (it looked, as a matter
- of fact, like the cover to Carl Sagan's book Cosmos). I tried
- to transfer my consciousness into it like I had done before, but
- it didn't work. After trying for a few moments, the gate faded
- and I thought to myself, "Goddamn that monster got me too worked up!"
- I decided I was done for the time being, so I got up out
- of bed. I was still in the dream house and still unaware that
- I was dreaming. I went looking for some paper to record my
- experience. I ended up going back into the basement where everyone
- was still hanging out. JC was there and the others and I
- told them all about the projection I had just had. Meanwhile,
- I was getting very concerned that I couldn't find any paper.
- Then I woke up for real, here on the physical plane.
- For a moment I was totally disoriented (didn't know where I
- was at or what was going on), and then I realized what had
- just happened. And so, as is my wont, I recorded it here."
- (END OF JOURNAL ENTRIES)
-
- So, there you have it; using psychic powers during astral
- projections. This is an extremely dramatic thing to attempt
- while you are projecting and I encourage everybody to try
- and remeber that you CAN do these kinds of things while
- out-of-body. And don't forget, watch for yourself using
- psychic powers in your dreams too!
-
-
- 6. Places you can go: Sights and vistas
-
- We are now going to get into the "travel brochure" part
- of this presentation. What I will discuss are the places
- that you can visit in the OOBE realm. As was stated earlier, the
- most useful generalization about the regions of the OOBE state is
- the idea that these regions are divided into "rings" (as Monroe
- calls them) or "subplanes (as occultists call them). To repeat,
- these subplanes form a spectrum that loosely corresponds to the
- spectrum of human emotions and states of mind. As human thought
- and feeling can range from the most lowly and debased to the most
- noble and inspirational, so too is it with the subplanes. Thus, I
- will break my description of the OOBE realm down roughly along such
- lines. I will break the regions of the subplanes down into three
- broad categories: the lowest, the middle and the highest, and
- discuss each of these in turn.
- I will also discuss two other aspects of the OOBE realm,
- and these are 1. the void and 2. what I will call, for lack
- of a better term, the "surreal" regions. The surreal regions
- are those places that you may find yourself that barely fit
- the description of being called a "place". These surreal regions
- are often very abstract and tend to be spaces of color, sound
- and feeling, though there are others I will describe.
- Generally speaking, what I am about to describe are ideas
- that are very common in the astral plane literature. What is
- amazing to me is that my own experiences in the OOBE state support
- quite strongly the common reports of the astral plane (i.e.
- see Fox, Monroe, Leadbeater). This could be taken in two ways.
- You could say I was highly influenced by other people's reports
- of the nature of the astral plane, and thus saw what they described
- based on subconscious expectation. Or we could take the fact
- that much of my OOBE experience is like what others report to
- indicate that the astral world is an (in some sense) "objective"
- world complete with its own sights, sounds and inhabitants.
- Throughout these notes I tend to go with the latter interpretation, but
- that does not preclude the former idea from having some degree of
- truth also. Generally, in my explorations of the OOBE realm I
- have tried to stay as far away from biasing my interpretations of
- my experiences as I could. I have found other people's ideas as
- useful *guides* and have never accepted other people's reports
- without some degree of scepticism. And, as we shall see below,
- I believe I have observed a number of "realms" in the OOBE state
- that are not commonly encountered, or have interpreted my
- experiences differently than how others have. This is
- particularly true with regard to the nature of the "surreal"
- regions which I will describe below.
- So, the basic idea here is that the astral plane does, to
- a large extent, appear to be a common reality that we can all
- visit. Subjective factors definately do enter into our
- observations in the nonphysical realms. My general advice is
- to always be skeptical of what you read and do not blindly
- accept what others say. This advice holds even for what I have
- written in these notes. Other people's observations are useful
- *guides* for your own activity, but, as I keep stressing, the bottom
- line is your own personal experience. If a thing works for you
- then that is what is important. If you discover that other
- people have expereinced what you have, then that is fine.
- However, do not make the mistake of trying to mold your
- experiences to the reports of others.
- So, this all said, let us begin our description of the
- OOBE regions by first considering the void.
-
-
-
-
- A. Life in the void
-
- If you will recall, the void is a great dark space that
- I often find myself in. Recall that, when we use the
- "radio station" theory of consciousness I presented earlier,
- the void is like the empty space between radio stations on
- the radio dial. Now, it would seem like there isn't
- really too much you can say about a great big space of utter
- nothingness. In actuality though, being in the void takes
- up a great deal of my time during astral projections - some-
- times much more than I'd like! I will not dwell at too great
- lenghth on what it's like in the void, but I do want to describe
- it enough so that if you end up there you will know what to do.
- Strangely enough, the void is not simply a homogeneous
- dark nothingness. There is actually a subtle type of variety
- to the different times I have been in the void. Sometimes it
- *is* simply a dark empty space. Other times though there is a
- hazy or smoky quality to it. Still other times I seem to see
- hazy ghost images of things. In this latter case, I suspect that
- I am very close to a subplane and am seeing ghost images of that
- subplane. Once I even met a being in the void! It was the only
- time I ever saw any kind of creature in the void. I will present
- this episode below because, at the very least, it is funny.
- The general circumstances in which I find myself in the void
- are as follows. I sometimes appear in the void as soon as I
- leave my body. I have presented examples of this already. I will
- also appear in the void if I lose my lockmold on a subplane
- (you will recall that the lockmold is how well you are tuned in
- on a subplane). If I lose my lockmold, I usually do not wake up,
- but instead appear in the void.
- Again, I am presenting these experiences here in case you find
- yourself in the void.
-
- 1>
- (Seeing ghost images in the void.)
-
- "(Had lost my lockmold and)...Then I was flying through the
- void. This time, though I was in the darkness of the void, I
- could perceive faint, but distinct silhouette images around me,
- and it seemed that I was flying through them. I thought to myself
- that I must be right on the border of some definite frequency or
- plane, not locked well enough to actually be there, but right next
- door to it so to speak. I kept flying on, and the silhouettes were
- very reminiscent of buildings, cars and city objects. As I flew on,
- at one point I got the impression that I had entered the water and
- was under the water, though I was still in the void. The
- silhouettes reminded me of fishes swimming around. They were not
- static images, they were moving too. Even though it seemed like
- I was under water, my movement through the void was no different,
- but I was afraid to materialize myself for fear of being under
- water. The silhouettes were interesting though. Some were of
- very large fish, at least 10 feet long. One looked like a shark
- and I passed close by it. Another one was a round squat shape
- about five feet in diameter. A school of swimming creatures
- passed me by. I remember too that when I would look upwards
- that I got the same effect that one observes swimming under water
- and looking up at the surface. But I kept flying forward and soon
- it seemed like I had passed out of the water cause now the
- silhouettes I was passing through looked much different, less
- organic, like vertical strips. So now I tried to materialize
- myself. To materialize I stopped my forward motion and simply
- began to spin round and round. Also I began to concentrate on
- my hands, trying to lift them up and look at them. Then I began
- to see the neatest thing. As my hands began to form and I could
- start to see them, the silhouettes around me began to take on
- color and form. It was slow at first so I concentrated harder,
- and I watched an environment form around me. I was now out of
- the void and somewhere. I was standing in a forest, surrounded
- by all kinds of plants...."
-
-
- 2>
-
- (A short description of the void.)
-
- "Dream-awoke laying in my old bedroom at Ma's house. I
- "flopped" out of my body. Flew downstairs. Flew to front door,
- tried to pass through but went into void. Stayed in void for
- some time wondering what it is. There were no recognizable
- silhouettes, but there were distinct qualities or feelings.
- At first the darkness was very "electric." Eventually the void
- seemed like a heavy fog. I got the idea to try to look at my
- hands. Watched my body and a red tile floor materialize around
- me as the fogginess of the void faded away. I was in an empty
- room with a red tile floor, it seemed like a small gymnasium or
- something...."
-
-
- 3>
- (Here is when I met a strange creature in the void.)
-
- "...I was in the void. Was floating listlessly, enjoying
- then peace and quiet, figuring out what I was going to
- do next. I looked off in the darkness before me and
- was absolutely amazed at what I saw, for coming towards
- me far off in the distance was a creature of some kind!
- I was totally startled. I had never seen another being
- in the void before! I slowly started to fly towards
- the creature, curiously studying it, as it moved towards
- me. At first, all I could see was that it was some type
- of humanoid, but as I got closer to it I could make out more
- detail. It had a human body, but its face resembled
- that of a wolf. It had a hairy face, long snout, and
- dark eyes. It was wearing an outfit that reminded me of
- the Green Goblin from the Spiderman comic books. As it
- got closer I could hear it mumbling to itself. I was
- about 10 feet in front of it, but it acted as if I was not
- there and simply kept mumbling to itself and kept moving
- towards me. I asked it what it was doing and, all
- of a sudden it was on top of me! The thing grabbed me
- and started to carry me off! I couldn't believe it!
- I was not scared at all, but suprised. I started to
- struggle and was telling it to let me go. I said
- "you can't do anything to me, I'm astral projecting!".
- It continued to ignore me and simply kept carrying me
- through the void. It mumbled something to itself about
- "a specimen for the bioleum". I heard this and realized
- that this thing intended to make me a specimen in some
- kind of museum! I couldn't believe this was happening to
- me. I kept yelling at it telling it I was astral projecting
- and I could wake up at any moment. It ignored me and kept
- carrying me forward. In the excitment of my struggling,
- I lost my lockmold and woke up in my physbod.
- Upon waking, I felt stupid for acting the way I did.
- I should have let it carry me to wherever it was going so
- I could have learned where this creature came from. Still,
- this was the first time I ever saw a creature of any kind
- in the void!"
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
-
-
-
-
- B. Life on the planes
-
-
- Let's now go onto the scenic elements of the OOBE realm.
- Again, I will divide these up into four major realms: the lower,
- the middle (or "normal"), the higher and the surreal realms.
- And again, each of these broad realms corresponds to states
- of mind and emotion. Let's discuss each of these realms in
- turn.
-
- i. The Lower Realms
-
- The lower realms of the subplanes are easily identified.
- They are often dark as if it is nighttime outside. There is also
- an eerie feel to the lower subplanes. They just feel creepy. Often,
- it is hard to move on the lower subplanes, similar to being on
- the etheric plane, where your movement seems to be retarded and
- in slow motion. And of course, you will encounter ghoulish
- creatures on these subplanes.
- You don't need to fear anything you encounter on these subplanes.
- First, it is unlikely you will spend any amount of time on these
- subplanes. I always have a bad lockmold on these planes, and
- thus, often "fade-out" of these lower subplanes within minutes.
- Since they do correspond to the worst of human existance, you'd
- have to be pretty evil yourself to be in tune with these subplanes.
- Second, it's actually kind of theraputic and eye opening to see these
- planes. Part of the goal of overcoming fear means opening up to
- the aspects of life revealed by these lower subplanes. By understanding
- these kinds of energies you transform them into something better.
- If you repress these energies, they only continue to ferment into
- something even worse. So, my advice is, if you find yourself
- on the lower subplanes, don't be afraid of what you encounter there.
- Take it as a learning experience.
- Now, if you are on a lower subplane, how to you get out of it?
- One trick I learned is the following: fly through the ceiling of
- wherever you are at. When you do this, you will go through the
- ceiling and come up through the floor of the same room you just
- left! But actually, it will not be the exact same room; it will
- be the room but on a higher subplane. Do this a few times until
- you see light outside and do not feel the heavy, eerie feeling
- anymore. You will then be on a higher subplane. This does not
- always work, but it does work sometimes, so it's worth giving
- it a try.
- Your other alternative is to just wait it out. As I said,
- it is unlikely, if you are a average, normal person, that you
- will be able to keep your lockmold stable on these subplanes for
- any extended period of time. If you just wait it out, you will
- probably disappear from that subplane within a couple of minutes
- anyway. If you choose this option, just explore your environment.
- Like I said, and you have to always keep this in mind when you
- project, nothing can hurt you when you are out of body. You
- are literally indestructible. YOU are the only thing that can
- hurt you, and the only way this can happen is by letting your
- own fears take you over. If you learn to control your fear,
- you will ALWAYS be safe out of body.
- This said, let me give a couple examples of what the lower
- subplanes are like.
-
- 1>
- (A typical lower subplane experience.)
-
- "Felt myself wake up on the physical. Tried to remember
- my dream but it faded quickly. That made me mad. Plus I hadn't
- projected for several days, and that sucked too. I thought "go for
- it" and pretended I was jumping out of my body - and I did!
- Surprised, I floated in my room for a brief instant and then
- faded. At first I thought I was in the void, but then I saw all
- kinds of humanoid silhouettes around me. There were all kinds of
- them marching like sleep walkers. It was a dark and eerie
- environment. I couldn't fly well and I felt like I was zipping
- along like a balloon. I shot past a silhouette and it bent out
- of my way in a distorted and unnatural manner-like it bent sideways
- or something. I tried to look at my hands, but it was very
- difficult. Woke up.
- This was a very short projection - less than a minute.
- I bet I was on the lowest astral plane. I think I saw a bunch
- of "lost souls". It was very much like Leadbeater described
- it - dark, heavy, hard to control one's movements. The
- silhouettes were like zombies; no self-consciousness, they
- just marched like a herd."
-
-
- 2>
- (Another typical lower suplane experience.)
-
- "...Drifted off to sleep again, imagining I was in the living room
- downstairs. In the next instant, I was downstairs! I was floating
- by the ceiling in the living room. It was dark, like nighttime.
- This time I could move, but it was very difficult. I pulled myself
- to the floor. I looked at the front door. The dimensions of the
- room were distorted and enlarged. The door looked far away, like
- in a telescope. I walked toward the door with great difficulty.
- I felt a small sense of triumph when I finally reached the door.
- I opened the door and walked out onto the porch. My movement
- became a little easier. I looked outside to the street. It seemed
- to be just before dawn. In the street, I saw two figures running
- carrying something looking like sacks over their shoulders. They
- seemed to be wearing what looked like long underwear. They were
- hunched over as they ran. I don't know what they were, though
- they were humanoid. My first impression is that they were thieves
- running from the scene of the crime.
- But the way they moved, all hunched and distorted made me
- think that they might be demons or some lowly astral creatures.
- At any rate, they disappeared across the street. They didn't
- notice me at all. I wanted to follow them but I knew I couldn't
- move as fast as they were. Then I flew out through the porch
- window around to the side of the house. Once outside, everything
- seemed really dark and murky, and distorted. I realized I was on
- the lowest astral plane and got scared. I wanted to leave and
- felt myself back in my body..."
-
-
- 3>
- (This entry illustrates some of the denizens of the
- lower subplanes, a topic to which we will return.)
-
- Was in one of those scary brown heavy regions.
- Thought I had woke up. Was laying in bed and I heard soft
- but threatening hissing voices. It made me scared. Had my back
- to the voices but it sounded like they were getting closer.
- Realized I was in the nasty etheric levels and tried to wake
- myself up. It backfired and I went into a higher dream level
- for a moment but lost lucidity and had a false awakening. Thought
- I had woke onto the physical but actually was in some dream
- facsimile of my room at Dad's. Saw a clear blue sky through
- crack in the curtains and it made me feel great; couldn't believe
- I let those stupid etheric ghouls get to me. Went back to sleep
- unafraid.
- Next I knew I was in the etheric again and heard the voices.
- This time I was irked and determined to confront them. I got up,
- with difficulty and said, also with much difficulty, "Whoever you
- are, come out and face me, I demand it!" Looking forward with it
- still appearing that I was in my Dads (actually it didn't feel
- like Dads in the episode, more like my own place but very
- comfortable), my brown curtains seemed to marshmallow out and it
- seemed this pack of strange humanoid creatures stepped through.
- My vision was very bad and I was having a difficult lockmold but
- I thought I saw about four of em. They had on long dingy robes
- and had strange distorted features. It seemed like they were
- yelling at me or something. I lashed out at them and stepped
- into them best I could. They seemed to disappear into the other
- wall.
- Fell back asleep more happy than before. Mold was terrible
- the whole time, everything had a brown cast to it. I could barely
- move or speak. As I was falling off to sleep, kept thinking about
- how Leadbeater says that the initiate has a hard time moving on
- the lower planes. Boy he was right."
-
-
- 4>
- (This is an example of using the "flying through
- the ceiling trick to get out of a lower subplane.)
-
- " I struggled to get out. I flopped out of my body and
- rolled onto the floor. My vision was blinking but I quickly
- realized where I was at and thought, "Shit! I gotta get outta
- here!" I saw I was on the lowest astral plane. I felt that
- dark, heavy uncomfortable feeling. Everything was in greys
- and browns. And worst of all, there were ghoulies all over
- my bedroom! They were broken and twisted bodies, moving about
- in their lethargic fashion. At least I didn't get frightened
- this time. I stayed level headed. My first thought was to wake
- myself up, but then I thought, "no, I'll just go to a higher
- plane." So I flew upwards through the ceiling, passed through
- the ceiling and came up through my floor. I did this a second
- time. Now there was sun shinning through my window and the
- ghoulies were gone, and everything was in normal colors. I was
- quite pleased with myself.
- I flew through the ceiling, this time going outside the
- house. It was sunny and beautiful outside..."
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
-
- ii. The Middle Realms
-
- The middle planes are very much like our physical world.
- Here you will find houses, schools, cities and buildings,
- forests and rivers and pretty much all the things you
- find on the physical plane. Remember though, we are NOT on
- the physical plane. These middle regions have a very ethereal
- feel to them compared to the physical plane.
- One place you will often go in these middle subplanes
- is the room you are in when you project. In my case, this is
- always my bedroom. That fact that you will project into your
- bedroom will afford you many opportunities to compare what
- your bedroom is like in your projection to what it is like on
- the physical plane. When you study these differences, you will
- quickly realize that, when you project, you are NOT in the
- physical world. So, if you do find yourself projecting into the
- room that you are in, I highly encourage you to study the details
- of your astral bedroom and, as soon as you wake up, pay close
- attention to how what you saw in your projection was similar to
- or different from how your room is on the physical plane. I will
- give an example of this below.
- One of the most interesting aspects of the middle subplanes
- is that many authors claim that in this region you will find
- discarnate people. In other words, these middle regions are
- where so-called "dead" people dwell, at least for a certain amount
- of time after their passing away. Thus, what you can find on these
- regions are places specifically designed for the recently dead.
- Such places take the form of hospitals or dormitories. Robert
- Monroe clearly describes such places. Monroe calls these "Rehab
- Centers", and I have visited them (or happened across them as the
- case may be) on many occasions. "Rehab Centers" exists in the
- astral world supposedly to provide a safe and confortable environment
- for the recently deceased, to allow them to get used to their new
- surroundings and new condition. As a matter of fact, entry number
- 6, in file 8, where I describe being dragged by the wind force,
- is a description of one of these "Rehab Centers". In this case
- it was for younger people; older teenagers and people
- in their early and mid twenties. I will put another such
- description below. And, if I was ever skeptical of the idea
- of these "Rehab Centers", this sceptism was laid
- to rest when I actually MET a deceased friend of mine in one of
- my projections. I will describe this encounter later when I
- discuss interacting with the people you meet in your
- projections.
- In general, you will find that the majority of your OOBEs
- occur in the middle regions of the subplanes. I recommend that
- you explore these regions carefully. Observe the construction of
- the buildings and houses. Feel free to go into strange houses
- and just look around. You will actually observe many interesting
- things that are much different from the physical plane. For
- example, I was once in a shopping mall in one of my projections, and
- it seemed to go on and on forever. There was no exit that I
- could find. I had a similar experience in a school once.
- Also, you will find many people here to talk to and communicate
- with. In a later section I will give suggestions for interacting with
- the people you meet in your projections. Here we are mainly interested
- in conveying some idea of what the middle regions of the subplanes
- are like. Let me now present a few of my journal entries of
- projections occurring on these middle subplanes which illustrate
- what is discussed above.
-
- 1>
- (Here is an example of me projecting into my
- backyard and then waking up immediately and
- comparing my astral backyard to my physical
- backyard.)
-
- "...I could feel myself laying on my bed in my physbod. Wanted
- to leave again. Began to relax and concentrated on staying
- dream-awake. Felt myself fall back into it. I jumped out and was
- in my bedroom. Turned and looked at my curtains. I tried to pass
- through them but couldn't. So I flew out my window - through
- the screen. I noticed that I was naked so I thought myself into
- some shorts. I flew out into the backyard, landed and sat on the
- grass. I wanted to fly off and explore but I thought that I
- should just sit there and observe details. I sat there and looked
- around trying to figure out how this environment was different
- from the one on the physical. Things looked normal. It looked
- like my backyard. The house next door looked like my neighbor's
- house. I even saw some of my neighbors in their yard down the
- street.
- [ Right now I'm awake on the physical and I just went
- outside and sat in the same spot I did in my projection to
- compare the two scenes, and there were many noticeable
- differences. First, where I saw my neighbors, there was no one
- there. I could not even see the house from where I was sitting
- in the backyard on the physical, the perspective was a lot broader
- in the projection. Second, in the projection, our backyard
- appeared much bigger and more open than it really is. Things
- seemed to be located in the same relative positions though.
- Third, the whole back yard was neater or tidier in the projection,
- and also "lighter". Just now when I was outside in the physical,
- the backyard had a "heavy", lush feeling that wasn't present in
- the projection. The grass needs to be cut in the physical but was
- short and neat in the projection. ]
- As I was sitting in my projection in the backyard the most
- unusual thing I noticed was that I could "see" the air. I've never
- seen anything like this on the physical. The air around me was
- moving like transparent sheets wrapping around and around one another.
- Also, these "sheets" were made of what looked like a fine mist of
- this white particulate matter that seemed to be graded from higher
- concentration to lower. The effect was something like when you see
- sunlight shinning through a fine mist of water. I only got to
- observe this effect for a moment because after I noticed it, my
- lockmold started to slip and I began to fade out. This "air
- effect" was the most significant thing I saw when I was actually
- sitting there in my projection. I was very fascinated while I
- was looking at it. Obviously, no such thing existed on the
- physical..."
-
-
- (continued in File 10)
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 9
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_10.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 10 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 4
-
-
-
-
- ii. The Middle Realms (continued from FILE 9)
-
- 2>
- (This is an example of me discovering a "Rehab
- Center". In this case, it was a place for the elderly,
- and it was very much like a nursing home. Also, though
- it is somewhat premature in the notes, in the following
- entry I met what seemed to me during the projection to
- be a deceased person, a young child. I have
- decided to include this here for the sake of keeping
- the journal entry intact. Later I will discuss meeting
- deceased people in more detail.)
-
- "Laid down. Broke consciousness. Was out of my body in my
- bedroom here at Dad's house. Passed out my window into the
- backyard but nothing looked familiar. Went around to the front
- and still didn't recognize anything. I can't recall any of the
- details. I wanted to fly away and explore so I shot upwards. I
- was afraid I'd blackout. I remember seeing suburb and city
- streets spread out below me. The scene below me looked like a
- bluish-green microchip. Then I blacked out. I was in the void
- and I tried like hell to fly downwards. I managed to go downwards
- somewhat and my vision faded back in and I saw the microchip
- looking city below me. There was a force tugging me back upward,
- but I resisted, broke it, and hovered back downwards. I watched
- the microchip scene turn back into city streets as I lowered myself.
- But now I was somewhere totally different than where I started
- and I still didn't recognize anything. I was standing in front of a
- building that had an official looking appearance. I went inside.
- There was a group of older women inside the doorway. I tried to speak
- with the one who looked the youngest (she looked to be maybe 50). I
- got her name, but she was basically ignoring me as if I was a
- bother to her. She was wearing a nurse outfit. I noticed that
- there were only old people around. I continued trying to talk
- to this nurse. I told her that I had a physical body at home,
- and that I was projecting and I wanted to know if she was aware
- of the fact that she was not in the physical world. Yet she
- continued to ignore me as she was too busy with the older folks.
- When I was talking to her, at some point a little blond boy with
- glasses, kind of nerdy looking, maybe 10 years old, appeared. He
- was hanging around me but I ignored him cause I was trying to talk
- to Kate or Katherine (the nurse). After the nurse left pushing
- someone in a wheel chair, I walked into what appeared to be a TV
- room. There was a TV on and a few old men sitting around watching
- it. I saw a bulletin board and went and tried to read it. I
- managed to read, with great difficulty, one line of what looked
- like a flyer announcing a party. I tried to reread the line so
- as to memorize it, but it now read something completely different.
- Familiar with this kind of a thing, I gave up on trying to read. The
- little boy was still following me around. I decided to leave. As
- I walked out, it dawned on me that this was probably an old folks
- home for recently dead people, like the kind that Robert Monroe
- describes. When I realized this, I really wanted to scram.
- The little boy followed me outside, then he took off running
- in front of me and indicated that I should follow him. He ran
- across the street to an old abandoned house. He ran around to
- the back and "stepped" up this ten foot step onto a platform of
- some kind, that looked like a scaffold. The whole while I was
- following this kid I told him to slow down or that I'd disappear.
- When we got around back, it took me a bit of trouble to climb up
- onto the platform that he got onto with merely one step. But I
- managed to pull myself up there. When I got up on this platform
- he told me that "this was the funnest place with the best toys."
- He was playing with a few broken wooden soldiers. I had the strange
- feeling that this child was dead and was simply running around
- unsupervised and uncontrolled on the astral plane. I started to
- fade and I held onto the child to stabilize myself. I tried to
- talk to him. I got that his name was Steven and he was from
- Illinois. He said his address was 1717 High Hill. Then he seemed
- to read my mind, cause I was going to ask him his zip code, but
- before I could he started mumbling a string of numbers. He didn't
- seem too intelligent. He seemed like a normal 10 year old. I
- asked him if he knew whether he was dead or if he was just
- dreaming. He told me he knew that his Dad was dead. As it
- was that my lockmold was unstable anyway, I faded out and awoke
- back in my physbod."
-
-
- 3>
- (Here is the excerpt from the infinite shopping mall
- I mentioned above.)
-
-
- "...Very dramatic and very very conscious. I was somewhere,
- don't remember where, or how I got there. I know I didn't like it
- though. It was a big place inside a building, high walls and giant
- rooms. It seemed like a giant shopping mall. Not giant in the
- sense of proportions, but giant in that it went on forever.
- Actually, I got both senses from the place. I felt claustrophobic.
- The escalators looked more like roller coaster cars and I couldn't
- figure out how they went round like an actual escalator. I asked
- someone where the exit was, and they pointed down to a lower level.
- I flew down that way. My perceptions were strange, very 4 d. No
- matter how I moved, the front always stayed in front of me.
- Somehow I ended up in a big room. There were people in a queue
- for what I thought was a ticket window. I tried to pass through
- the wall but couldn't. It was kind of funny cause I was bouncing
- rapidly against the wall but not going through it. Someone in
- the queue pointed up at me saying something to the effect "the nerve
- of some people". I thought to myself "fuck you". I landed
- frustrated . Stood there wondering how I was going to get out of
- this place. Then my vision blacked out..."
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
- This is all I am going to say about the middle regions of the
- OOBE realm. Again, I want to stress that the majority of typical
- OOBEs occur in these realms.
-
-
-
-
- iii. The Higher Realms
-
- There are higher realms in the astral plane. I have
- not visited these as much as I have the lower and middle realms,
- which, given the psychological correspondence between the OOBE
- realms and one's personality, could be construed as a not too
- pleasant situation. Still, my few visits to the higher realms
- are characterized by the following. The higher realms
- appear much more ethereal than the middle realms. Colors are
- very delicate and "light" (i.e. the opposite of heavy). Colors
- and things can also appear very much like sparkling jewels.
- In general, the higher regions still have buildings and
- recognizable landscapes. The most important clue that you are
- in a higher region is *how it feels*. When in a higher region,
- everything feels really, really good. It is peaceful and
- satisfying and makes you feel light, relaxed and content.
- It is my suspicion that here too, as with the middle realms,
- you will find regions where deceased people dwell. These are
- likely the regions people pass into after they have worn out their
- earthy desires which bind them to the middle regions. According
- to occultists, and other authors (Monroe, for example) these
- higher regions are NOT the final resting place for the departed.
- They are still intermediate stages in the long soujurn that occurs
- after the death of the physical body.
- Another thing that differentiates the middle from the higher
- regions is something I forgot to mention in the discussion of the
- middle regions. This is the fact that you may sometimes encounter
- dreaming people in the middle regions. How you can tell
- dreaming people from dead people will be discussed ahead. Here I
- just want to say that you rarely encounter dreamers in the
- higher OOBE regions. Let me now give a couple journal
- entries that I believe were visits to the higher
- OOBE regions.
-
- 1>
-
- (Here is an excerpt of what I feel was a projection
- to a higher subplane. It was a beautiful place.
- Note too the potential romance.)
-
- "....I faded in alongside a pink house that reminded me of my
- old place on Houghton Ave. - which is one of the reasons I thought
- I was in Houghton. Standing on the lawn I saw a white picket fence
- running up the walk to the front door. Across the street was a lake
- and beyond the lake an amazing horizon of sun and colors. Everything
- seemed to have a pinkish red tint to it. The colors were like
- soft delicate pastels. A warm breeze was blowing.
- My movements were like slow motion as I walked through the
- front yard (not the slow motion kind of movement that makes it difficult
- to move, but a slow motion in the sense of being very dream like).
- My thoughts seemed very removed from my situation. The whole
- thing seemed to be beautifully unreal (but not contrived,
- like I feel when I'm in a thought-form. This feeling was different,
- what one might call a "sense of surrealism"). These feeling were
- compounded by a deep realization of the novelty of these feelings
- in the context of the fact that I was projecting. I was trying to
- figure out what to do next. Should I fly into the colored sky-scape?
- Should I walk about and explore? I dreamily went up and leaned on
- the picket fence in awe of the serene beauty that was filling me at
- the moment.
- Then, from across the street came a very beautiful blond
- girl. She was wearing a black sleeveless top and a plaid skirt of
- greens, yellows and reds. Her beauty fit in exquisitely with this
- place. She ran across the street towards the house I was at. She
- walked up the front walk past me apparently not noticing me.
- "Hey, Blonde," I called to her. My voice was distorted and
- in slow motion. I waved at her and my motions were in slow motion.
- She turned and saw me. I tried to say `come here', but the words
- wouldn't come out. But she could tell what I wanted for she
- walked over to me. Up close she was even more beautiful than I
- first thought. Straight blond hair draped over her elfin features,
- thin high cheek bones, slender green eyes, cute upturned nose. I
- was irresistibly drawn to her. We hugged. I caressed her breast
- which felt so soft and real. She responded to me erotically and
- sensuously. We kissed and I felt myself begin to fade. I pressed
- my entire body against hers trying to stabilize myself. I rubbed
- my face, arms, legs, torso and groin against hers. Still clutching
- her I faded out..."
-
- 2>
-
- (Here is another episode in which I believe I was
- in a higher region. The place in the following
- entry is very much like a place described by
- spiritualists called "Summer Land", which is
- a beautiful meadow strewn region where the
- deceased rest. Note that this occurred in the same
- projection where I was in the infinite mall.)
-
- "(after I had escaped the shopping mall and was in the void
- for a while)...I materialized somewhere else! I was now standing outside,
- in what seemed to be a pleasant countryside. There was a guy and a
- girl standing near me looking at me. They looked like hippies to
- me. Both were wearing loose white tops and white skirts, with
- sandals on their feet. She was blond and cute, he had a beard.
- I asked them where I was at. They seemed to be paying attention
- to me. I asked them what was this place and what their names were.
- They didn't respond to my questions but we did talk. The girl
- said something to me but I thought she was just speaking nonsense.
- Yet it didn't seem to matter. There was an incredible happiness
- that filled me and I wanted to make love to her. She took me by
- the hand and I walked with them. I saw wood shacks dotted about
- and other people around the shacks. The area seemed to be a
- beautiful meadowland of rolling hills of green and yellow. I
- remember fighting to hold my lock mold, and they seemed to sense
- this and we moved slowly and cautiously. We ended up on a hill
- under a tree. I flew up into the tree, and they flew with me,
- still holding my hand. We frolicked about the tree in the air.
- The tree seemed very 4-d, as if I could see many perspectives
- simultaneously, and the tree looked as if it was weightless.
- I remember looking in her face as she was suspended above me,
- and I lost the lock mold. I felt it coming though because we
- were moving rapidly , dancing in the air around the tree. Then
- I was in blackness again..."
-
-
- iv. The Surreal Regions
-
-
-
- Finally, I want to end this survey of the places you
- may go by describing what I will call the "surreal" regions.
- As I said, these are realms of dancing sounds and colors. They are
- not really "places" in the sense we normally think of the word
- "place". I have actually been in these surreal regions quite a bit.
- Getting to them has a lot to do with the void. Often, I will
- be in the void and it will transform into a surreal region.
- What are the surreal regions? There are a couple answers
- to this question as far as I can tell. Some of the surreal regions
- are related to the physical plane or how the physical plane
- affects the etheric plane. That is, such regions have
- something to do with perceiving the physical plane from a viewpoint
- we normally cannot. Many times I have seen what look to me like
- biological structures in my projections, and I wonder if I may
- be actually seeing my brain or my own body from on the inside.
- That is, sometimes it seems like my perception "shrinks" and I
- can see things that normally one would need a microscope to see.
- This is one class of surreal region.
- Now, the idea of perceiving minute things that we cannot
- see with our normal vision is not new. Yogis have described this
- ability for centuries. The earliest known description of this
- psychic ability is in Patanjali's Yoga sutras, which dates
- back to 500 B.C.. At the turn of the century Annie Besant and
- C.W. Leadbeater used this psychic ability, which they called
- "magnifying clairvoyance" to literally see atoms and molecules,
- and they published these observations in a book called Occult Chemistry.
- In 1980, this ability was dubbed "micro-psi" by Stephen Phillips,
- a physicist who studied Besant and Leadbeater's descriptions of atoms.
- The Hindu name for this ability is "anima" and anima is this name
- I will use.
- What I am saying is that you will be able to use this ability,
- anima, when out-of-body. This will occur in two contexts. In
- the first case, this may be the basis for some of the hypnogogic
- images you see. That is, during hypnogogia, some of what you may see
- may actually be you using anima, shrinking down your perception
- and actually seeing the cellular and molecular structures of
- which your body is composed. I will give examples of this below.
- The other context in which you may find yourself using the
- anima ability is that you will seem to be in a PLACE that is
- very "biological" looking. In this case you are not merely
- viewing biological structures, but are actually *inside* of them.
- Now, in both cases, I do NOT believe you are literally
- viewing your physical body. I feel that these perceptions
- exist on the etheric plane. So what you are seeing is etheric
- plane images that correspond to biological structures inside
- your body. This is very similar to when you see your bedroom
- during a projections; it is not your physical bedroom, but its
- etheric counterpart. Whatever the truth behind these biological
- appearing images, there is no question that you may see them.
- The second type of surreal regions you may visit falls into
- a different category than the anima images. This second
- category of surreal regions is closely related to the void.
- Sometimes you may be in the void and it will transform into
- a space of abstract colors and shapes. You will have a hard time
- putting what you see in such spaces into words. The shapes and colors
- will also move and be very dynamic. When you are in such a surreal
- space, it may either transform back into the void, or you may
- transform into one of the middle or higher regions of the astral
- plane.
- What is going on here is the following. When you move from
- the void to a subplane (using the hands trick, for example), what
- you are doing is phasing into that subplane. Again, using our
- "radio station theory of consciousness", this is analogous
- to moving from a region of static on the radio to tuning into a
- radio station. Now, tuning into a subplane, though it is
- *analogous* to tuning into a radio station on your radio, is
- by no means the same process. When you are tuning into a subplane
- during an OOBE, it is possible to PARTIALLY tune into a subplane
- and perceive that subplane from a completely different angle
- or perspective than if you have completely tuned into the subplane.
- When you percieve a subplane from such a partial angle, it
- looks TOTALLY DIFFERENT than it does if you tune into it
- completely. What you see during a partial tuning into a
- subplane is a weird space of moving colors and geometric
- patterns. In other words, you appear to be in a surreal region.
- Now, this idea is not speculation on my part. I have
- literally observed this to be the case. I will give an example
- below showing how this works.
- So, in summary, I have discovered two types of surreal regions
- encountered during OOBEs. The first results from anima and these
- are perceptions of biological and molecular spaces. The second
- results from partially tuning into a subplane. Both types of
- surreal space are perceived as very abstract looking "places"
- of moving colors and geometric images. I have made minor references
- to these types of perceptions in some of the entries I have listed
- so far. In one I speak of falling through the "meme bacteria" and
- this is a description of using anima to see biological structures.
- These "meme bacteria" are green and purple neonish colored images,
- and they may appear as green tubes with purple liquid flowing
- through them (which I think my be me seeing my blood flowing
- through my veins or arteries), but they may also appear
- as swirling vortexes of green and purple. or as a wall of
- green and purple patterns. I also have referred to seeing the
- "green and purple" images during hypnogogia and these also
- refer to using anima.
- Finally, to close I want to say that the two categories
- of surreal space I describe here by no means exhaust the possible
- causes of surreal spaces in the OOBE realm. According to reports by
- occultists, yogis and other OOBE authors, there are many types of
- surreal spaces including planes beyond the astral. The reader
- interested in further information is referred to the bibliography.
- This said, let me list some of my experiences in surreal regions
- while out-of-body.
-
-
- 1>
- (Earlier in these notes I presented an entry in which
- I was being dragged along by the wind force, in
- FILE 8, entry 2 under the heading "a. Moving, Flying
- and the "Wind". While I was being dragged backwards
- by this wind force, I decided to turn around
- and see if I could see what was dragging me. When
- I turned around I saw a surreal landscape. The
- following is the continuation of the entry from
- FILE 8, and I believe this was an anima based
- perception.)
-
- " ...For a while I relaxed and let it drag me along.
- Soon though I became impatient and wanted to see if I could
- turn myself around and see what was dragging me. I struggled very
- hard to pull myself around, and it felt like I was trying to pull
- myself against hurricane winds. When I had my back to the
- direction of this wind force, I remember seeing trees pass me
- by at high velocity. But I managed to turn around and what I
- saw was unbelievable and utterly amazing. I don't even really
- know how to describe it! When, after great effort, I turned
- myself around, I was no longer seeing the forest. Instead I was
- looking onto this unbelievable colored field and there were three
- spheres ahead of me and they had something that looked like
- butterflies dancing in each of them. But they were not
- butterflies, though they looked a little like them. Whatever
- they were, there was one each inside of the three spheres and
- these "butterflies" were spinning and rotating within the sphere
- and constantly changing color. The way they changed color was
- strange, it was as if colors were welling into them from
- somewhere I could not see, like a liquid, and flowing around inside
- of these butterfly creatures.
- I was both awed and confused; confused that the forest was
- gone, and confused at what I was looking at, awed because whatever
- I was looking at was very, very beautiful.
- My first thought was, "God, this looks like what Leadbeater
- describes the astral plane to look like." But there was a
- peculiar quality to the scene that reminded me of looking under
- a microscope. I began to wonder if I was seeing the inside of
- my brain somehow. The "butterfly" things were extremely
- reminiscent of cellular appearances. The background behind
- the three spheres looked like a landscape, somewhat reminiscent
- of a garden, but it was strangely and complexly colored, most of
- the details escaping me now except the preponderance of pink
- colors, and the effect of sunset-like colors.
- Also, I experienced another unique sensation after I had
- turned around. I still felt like I was being pulled forward by
- the wind, though that was weakening. I could see nothing in
- front of me that seemed to be pulling me. And the strange field
- of colors with its dancing "butterflies", though appearing three
- dimensional, looked like it was very close to my face. But
- strangest of all was a very weird feeling that I could pull off
- the top of my head. This was the first time I had felt this
- sensation though it would not be the last. The feeling is that,
- at the very top line of my visual field, I can reach underneath
- and pull upwards, and the top of my head would rip off. Obviously,
- this is not a pleasant feeling, but I was very curious as to what
- it was and why I felt it, and if the feeling had any connection to
- the scene before me, which I was thinking more and more was some
- inner view of some type of cells and biological structures.
- Yet in short order, the pulling of the wind died away, I felt
- myself slowing down, and the scene before me faded away. I was
- back in my bedroom again, still lucid in the projection
- state..."
-
- 2>
-
- (Here is the first time I had been to a surreal
- region resulting from partially tuning into a
- subplane. You can see below that I suspected
- my perceptions were due to partially tuning into
- a subplane, but I was not certain at this point.)
-
- "I was back in the void again. This time though it was
- different from the last time. I was seeing really complex
- geometrical patterns come spinning past me. It's hard to remember
- exact details, but every now and then I'd see these really
- intense color patterns. It was hard to conceptualize what I was
- looking at in this "void". I'd be zipping along checking out
- these spiro-graph patterns then all of a sudden I'd see a color
- pattern. It wasn't that these color patterns would appear before
- me in the void like the black and white spirograph patterns, it
- was more like I would "fall" backwards, see these intense color
- patterns, then "slip forward" back into the void. I was wondering
- if I was bordering on some deeper, more abstract plane and was
- blinking in and out of it or something. I do remember seeing
- these really intense lime-green cones that were embedded in some
- type of complicated geometrical patter. I remember yellow and
- purple too. At some point I did my spinning trick and my hand
- trick and cause myself to materialize again.
- Now I was in what seemed like an upstairs flat or apartment..."
-
-
- 3>
- (In this projection, I literally saw first hand how
- the surreal space I was in resulted from seeing a
- subplane from a different perspective, so to speak.
- In other words, it was during this projection that
- I saw absolutely that my perception of a surreal
- space was related to a definite subplane.)
-
- "Had been up all night studying for an exam and gabbing with
- John. Went to bed about 5:00 AM. I fell asleep almost immediately.
- Next thing I knew I was walking thru a dance club, very reminiscent
- of the Detroit dance club scene. The place was large and dark,
- and there was a huge dance floor filled with very underground
- looking people. I was not lucid at this point, but I had a very
- strong feeling that something was up. I walked off of the dance
- floor into another room that was a bar. Sitting at the bar was
- my good friend Eric, with whom I had jammed in a band. When I
- saw Eric it dawned on me - I was in the dream world! And also,
- at this realization, I most definitely experienced the "headrush"
- feeling. My lucidity was incredible. Everything was absolutely
- clear and vivid. I felt exactly like I do when I'm awake. Once
- my lucidity clicked in though, I became very aware of my potential
- to fade out so I moved very slowly and carefully...
- (I spoke to Eric, then faded out into the void)
- ...I seemed to now be floating in the void. However, there
- were what seemed to be colored triangles moving around, crossing
- and spinning over one another making distinctly geometric patterns
- in front of me. The colors were mainly a yellowish green with red,
- orange and pink hues and they had the texture of clear and smoky,
- but smooth glass. "This is a weird view of the void," I thought
- to myself. I stared at these patterns wondering what the hell I
- was looking at. I began to focus harder and harder on these
- patterns, trying to discern some detail in them. Then, as I was
- focusing, the most incredible thing happened. I watched these
- patterns "solidify" and transform into the scene on the dance
- floor of the club I had just left. The spinning triangles were
- actually the dancing people in the club! I was amazed. I relaxed
- my focus and the scene faded back to the spinning triangles. I
- was thinking, "Wow! This is amazing!" I tightened my focus again
- and the triangles again transformed into the dancers on the dance
- floor. This time I tightened my focus so much that the entire
- bar scene faded in around me! I was back in the bar again!
- My lockmold was again very strong, but again, I moved slowly
- and cautiously so as not to get too excited and fade out. I
- wondered if Eric was still here. I walked off the dance floor,
- through a neon lit hallway, back into the bar where I had seen
- Eric. And no shit - there he was in the same room! I was
- extremely lucid and I really had to fight to keep myself calm
- because I knew I would fade if I got too excited..."
-
-
- 4>
-
- (The final example I will give of a surreal space
- is perhaps the most dramatic I have ever experienced.
- However, I failed fully to record this experience until
- 4 years after it had happend. Here is what I wrote
- in my journal the day I had the experience in 1988:)
-
- ""Laid there thinking/talking to myself, did hands trick and
- skipped/fell down/backwards. Landed by a gymnasium. Skipped to
- an acting stage (i.e. artificial, like it was a stage set) looking
- city. Got bored and left. Voided a bit. Explored four levels of
- physiological structure: 1. the meme bacteria, 2. swirling colors,
- eddy fluxes, 3. cells and proteins, 4. rock plateau with embedded
- gems and atom lattice. Skipped to 5th level and was in a city.
- Skipped into a room and talked to a girl. Various other things
- that I can't remember. Laid in focus 10 remembering then
- fell asleep."
-
- (This is all I wrote originally in my journal.
- It was 4 years later that I elaborated on
- these brief notes when typing my journal into the
- computer. Below is what I remembered of this
- experience four years later. What we have here
- is a lesson in being lazy. I was too lazy to
- record this experience in detail, and, as you will
- see, I forgot significant parts of the experience.
- This is, in my mind, one of the most significant
- uses of anima that I ever have done. I was a fool
- to not record it in more detail. What I could remember
- when I entered my journal into the computer is:)
-
- "...What I do recall very clearly is that, while I was in the midst
- of the meme bacteria level, I got the idea to shut my eyes, spin around
- rapidly, and pretend that I was shrinking. When I did this and
- opened my eyes up I was quite surprised to see that I was actually
- somewhere else! That I had or had not shrunk down I don't know
- absolutely, but then again, there is not one thing described in
- this journal that I have any absolute understanding of (other than
- the fact that this stuff did occur!). And what I saw when I opened
- my eyes was amazing. I was in the midst of a spectacular panorama
- of swirling activity and spiraling colors. In the entry above I
- refer to this as "swirling colors, eddy fluxes". Even now I can
- remember some of the images of what I saw. At the time my
- impression was that I was watching the biochemical cycles inside
- my cells, but I was seeing them up close. The scene was
- staggering in its complexity. In this projection, I was floating
- amongst the images, floating surrounded by these color patterns.
- I remember that I was amazed, but baffled, and didn't understand
- in the least what I was looking at, other than that it was very
- beautiful and moving around too much to make out any definite
- structure.
- At the time, during the projection, the main thing going
- through my mind was the new travel/skip technique I had just
- devised. Since, at this second level, which I had assumed to
- be nested inside of the meme bacteria level, I didn't really
- know how to make much sense of what I was seeing, I decided
- to try the same technique again. So, in the midst of all these
- swirling colors, I shut my eyes, started spinning around and
- once again pretended I was shrinking. Then I opened my eyes and
- again I was somewhere else! In the entry above I have the
- description of this third level as "cells and proteins".
- Unfortunately, at this point I don't remember a single image
- I saw at this level. Whatever it was though, it must have been
- things that reminded me of protein structure, which would mean
- coils and loops, or I wouldn't have written this in my journal.
- I do remember clearly though what I was thinking at this level.
- I remember thinking to myself something along the lines of the
- following logic, "if I'm really looking at proteins, then I
- should be able to shrink down and actually see the individual
- atoms that the proteins are composed of." So I shut my eyes,
- spun around rapidly, and pretended to shrink even further. When
- I opened my eyes I was again at a new level and this I remember
- clearly even now as I type. I opened my eyes and I was standing
- on a rock ledge, and in this ledge were embedded little glistening
- jewels. I looked up and in front of me as far as I could see were
- little dots of light all lined up in a lattice pattern. "Are
- those atoms?" I wondered, "if they are, then why aren't they
- moving?" The ledge that was overlooking this lattice work was
- only about three feet high and I stepped off of it into the lattice
- sea of lights. I floated out into it, mostly confounded by what I
- was looking at. It was very still and quiet. The lights were
- simply embedded in the darkness, and they were not moving or
- anything, only sitting in place glowing softly. I remember these
- images clear as day. I floated through this panorama and became
- bored because it was the same thing in every direction I looked.
- I know I was trying to see things like Besant and Leadbeater
- described in Occult Chemistry. So I shut my eyes, spun around
- again, and pretended to shrink.
- And again, I opened my eyes and was somewhere else! This
- time though I was standing in a city, and it felt very gloomy
- to me. It was misty and kind of dark. Things were colored,
- but pale, and mostly shadowy. I felt a little scared by this
- place. Far off in the distance I saw a creature running and it
- seemed to me to look like a wolf running like a man. I remember
- at this point thinking to myself, "I wonder if I'm on the lowest
- astral plane now? Maybe what happened is I started out at the
- meme level, shrunk deeper and deeper into the physical level,
- until I finally popped right out of the physical level into the
- astral plane." That's what I thought when I was actually
- there seeing it first hand, and this is what I believe today."
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
-
-
- So there you have it. We've now gone through a survey of
- what it's like on the other side of the veil, in the OOBE
- realm. By any standard, what I have described here is only
- a fraction of what has been described. And moreover, what has
- been described here is obviously slanted by and limited by my own
- experiences in the OOBE realm and my own interpretations of these
- experiences. I do, by all means, encourage everyone
- to read as much as they can about what life is like in the planes.
- You may find contradictory reports, you may find differing
- interpretations, but this is to be expected. The realm where
- OOBEs occur is vast beyond anything we know or understand here
- in the physical world. It is truly important if you want to
- have as full an understanding as possible that you expose your-
- self to as many views as possible about the OOBE/astral projection/
- lucid dream experience. And, as always, you want to use YOUR OWN
- EXPERIENCE IN THESE REALMS, as your basis for interpreting the reports
- of others. Other people's reports are great for giving us ideas
- and for exposing us to possibilities, and for corroborating the
- things we experience out-of-body, but in the end, there is
- no substitute for personal, direct experience. I try here to show
- you doors. It is you who must pass through these doors.
-
-
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 10
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_11.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 11 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 5
-
-
-
- 7. Things And People You Meet
-
-
- We've discussed the things you can do and places you can go
- during an OOBE, now I'd like to discuss the creatures you can meet
- during an OOBE. In general you can break this topic down into
- two parts: 1. the nonhuman things you meet, and 2. the human
- things you meet. I will now discuss each of these in turn,
- beginning with the nonhuman things first.
-
-
-
- A. Nonhuman Denizins Of The Planes
-
- A number of the entries I have presented so far are
- examples of meeting nonhuman entities. I have described
- meeting the following "creatures": a talking rhino (FILE 8, entry
- 9 under the heading "Exercising psychic powers"), a friendly
- spirit (FILE 8, entry 4 under "Moving, Flying and the "Wind"),
- numerous ghouls, and describe meeting a number of people as well.
- Basically, and this is commonly reported in the astral plane
- literature, there are any number of nonhuman entities you may meet.
- Such entities include "intelligent" animals, spirits of all types,
- fairy folk, strange monsters, ghouls, zombies, rotting bodies
- and pretty much anything else you can imagine. These entities
- may be friendly, hostile or anything in between. They may be
- completely indifferent to your presence.
- About all I can say in terms of meeting nonhuman entities
- is that you want to try to ascertain a number of factors.
- First, you want to try to determine if the entitiy displays
- volition. That is, does the entity act of its own accord? If
- it does not, then it is possible you are seeing a thought-form.
- I will give an example of meeting a thought-form below. Second,
- try to communicate with the entity if you can. It can't hurt you
- to try. Finally, if the entity appears hostile, don't worry about
- it, as we saw with the creature that tried to capture me in the
- void (FILE 9, entry 3 under "Life in the void"), the situation
- was basically harmless. I will also present entries below where
- I confront hostile nonhuman entities so you can see what I have
- done in such circumstances.
- Let me now present some entries.
-
- 1>
- (Note that this is part of the entry in FILE 9,
- number 13 under "Excercising psychic powers". Here
- I merely said: (I then met a monster in the cave,
- which lunged at me and caused me to lose my lockmold...).
- I will now present this meeting with the monster. This
- is a good example of illustrating how a threatening
- encounter, though startling, is harmless.)
-
- "I was standing back in the mist filled cave wondering what the
- heck I had just seen (as described in entry 13, FILE 9). The
- dangling objects caught my attention and I hovered up to get
- a closer look at them. They appeared to be highly
- colored paper mache tubes suspended from strings, real reminiscent
- of Chinese artwork. I focused on them in the same fashion I did
- above and their appearance changed. Now they looked like little
- creatures dangling from strings! They had bodies that were small
- in proportion to their heads. They had little bead-like eyes and
- long tube-like beaks. They had short little dangling arms with
- little detailed hands that reminded me of mice hands. I figured
- that they must be some kind of elementals. I touched them and felt
- them. But the focus broke again and they reverted back to colored
- paper-mache tubes.
- I looked around wondering if there was a mirror. Inspecting
- the shelves against the cave wall, I saw a mirror about 10 feet up
- on the cave wall! (No real surprise, huh?) I flew up to it and
- looked at myself. What I saw looked like a horror story version
- of myself. It was me , but my skin was all white and flaked, my
- eyes were completely white and chalky looking, and my eye sockets
- were deep as if my face was just a skull. I thought to myself,
- "Oh my!". But I wasn't unusually startled. This is not the first
- time I had seen weird images of myself in astral mirrors. I
- continued staring at the image and it then transformed into a
- normal image of myself. I thought that that was interesting. I
- turned and looked around the cave, then turned back to the mirror.
- I saw the same thing; first the horror image, which then transformed
- to the normal image. I hovered down to land on the cave floor
- wondering if there was any significance to these mirror images.
- I was staring forward into the mists at the cave entrance and
- saw an outline of a humanoid form there. "What the hell is that?"
- I wondered. I became a bit trepid. The image was moving towards
- me and I focused on it with my new focusing method. And boy, did
- I get a surprise again! What I saw was a ghastly looking monster
- ready to lunge at me! I got a good glimpse of what it looked
- like. Its face had the same quality as my horror mirror image;
- white chalky skin, pure white eyes. Its mouth was agape, fangs
- protruding from its jaws. It seemed to be over 6 feet tall,
- humanoid, and was unquestionably bigger than me. It had its
- arms extended to grab at me, and it had huge claws on its hands.
- It seemed to be wrapped up like a mummy.
- I backed up into the air, more disturbed than scared, and tried
- to pass through the back of the cave wall, but to no avail. There
- was no way I could shoot past it, it was too close and would grab
- me. And then, it also shot up in the air and was coming at me. I
- at least wasn't panicking and the thing lunged at me with a loud
- growl. At the last moment it dawned on me, "What the hell can
- this thing do to me anyway? After all, I'm in my astral body.
- It can't hurt me." The monster bounced on me and grabbed me. The
- shock of its impact was enough to cause my lockmold to break. I was
- back on my bed...."
-
-
- 2>
- (Here's another example of a monster lunging at me.
- This time it's a ghoul. Again, you don't have to fear
- these things.)
-
- "...I turned away from the mirror wondering what my appearance
- meant and I noticed that my window which has a fan in it on the
- physical plane did not have a fan in it now. But then I noticed
- that there was somebody or something standing out in the backyard.
- I looked and it was a ghoul! There was a ghoul creature standing
- outside my room! It was wearing a ragged yellow shirt and ripped
- red shorts. It had long stringy, dirty gray hair, and looked like
- a corpse in an advanced state of decay. God, now I was really
- wondering what the hell was going on! Not only did I look weird,
- but now there was some astral slime in my very own backyard.
- It didn't strike me during the projection, but what was weird was
- how the ghoul was positioned in my backyard and the angle I was
- viewing him from out my window. He was standing at the corner
- of my room on the outside, with its side facing in my direction and
- its front facing towards the street and its back facing into the
- backyard. What I didn't realize until I woke up and wrote this
- is that there is no way I could see someone if they were standing
- in this position on the physical plane. I just tried to look out
- my window from where I was standing in my room in the projection,
- and you simply can't see that corner of the house. I have to put
- my face right up to the screen and turn my head to see that position
- from my window. But in the projection I could see that position
- perfectly standing back a few feet from the window. Geometrically,
- this would mean that the corner of my room was less than 90
- degrees in my projection on whatever plane I was on. Either
- this or that I could very naturally see around a 90 degree corner!
- And I know that I was NOT seeing through the wall. I saw the
- zombie through the window. Whatever the case, the geometry of
- space was definitely very different in my projection than it is
- on the physical plane.
- So there I was looking at the ghoul wondering what I should
- do. It was just standing there at the corner of the house and I
- didn't know if it was conscious, or if it knew I was looking at
- it or what. But my curiosity got the best of me and I figured I'd
- dive out my other window that was up over its head and see just
- what it looked like up close. I figured, hell, this is the astral
- plane, and the thing can't hurt me anyway so what have I got to
- lose? So I dove through my window. I passed through the window
- and there I was in front of it. I tried to look at its face, but
- its face was just a blur and I couldn`t focus on it. But it looked
- like a dried up corpse with long dirty, stringy hair and its ripped
- up clothes. Then an instant after I jumped out the window, it lunged
- at me. I remember that the thing growled as it lunged. It startled
- the shit out of me and I pulled myself awake. I sat there in bed
- wondering what it all meant. Was that thing still outside on
- another plane? Did it wander off again? Why was something like
- that in our backyard? Was it just passing through? Did this
- household emit vibes that attracted it? Why did my body materialize
- into such a deformed shape? I didn't know what to think. After
- I awoke, I wasn't scared or spooked or anything like that, just
- very curious. I've know enough about this projecting now to realize
- that nothing can hurt me out there except myself and I never need
- to fear anything. Wrote this entry."
-
- 3>
- (Here's a description of some strange creatures I
- met that seemed to have their own volition, but
- didn't seem too intelligent. It is my suspicion
- that these were some type of fairy-folk.)
-
- "Was dreaming in my old room at Ma's house. I knew I was
- going to go into it. I fell off my bed and flew up. I was looking
- out my (old) bedroom window over Ma's backyard. I flew through
- the window effortlessly. I was up over Ma's backyard. I could
- feel the wind whipping past me. I was glad to be back. Flew
- around a bit then went straight up. Blacked out at about one quarter
- mile up. Was in the void, but I flew downward anyway. I regained
- my sight but didn't recognize where I was. I wanted to experiment
- so I hovered in the air and imagined I was at Dad's house. I
- wanted to materialize there. It didn't work, or if it did I
- couldn't tell because I blacked out again. I remembered what I
- had read in Greene's book about going into space, so I decided I
- was going to try to fly to the moon. I flew upwards and imagined
- I was at the moon. I was still in the void, and I didn't really
- know where I was, or where I was going, but after flying upwards
- for some time I tried to regain my lockmold. I concentrated on
- trying to perceive around me in the void, and I started to
- materialize somewhere. I was standing in a clearing in a misty
- old forest. I thought to myself, "This is the moon? It doesn't
- look like the moon." I remember a moss covered fallen tree at my
- feet, mist creeping across the ground, yellow dead grass. My
- vision wasn't perfect, the lockmold was shaky, I couldn't see
- into my peripheral vision. I heard a weird gooing noise in
- front of me. It sounded like little babies laughing in a
- demented way. I looked up and saw little people coming at me.
- I became frightened a little bit, but I was as equally curious.
- The gooing noises were coming from them and it was creepy.
- They were ugly little creatures- grey purple skin, black matted
- hair on the tops of their heads, about 1 and 1/2 feet tall,
- stout little bodies with pudgy arms and legs, and pitch black eyes.
- They were wearing what looked like rags about their groins.
- They approached me with their arms outstretched trying to touch
- me. I was frightened as much as I was repulsed. I said "let
- me go!", as they were now grabbing at me. They weren't hostile
- though, they only seemed to be curious. I looked one of them
- distinctly in the face and it stared back up at me and seemed
- to smile- though it was an empty and nonintelligent smile. I
- began to lose my lockmold and felt myself fading away. Could
- feel myself in my physbod again. Could see hypnogogic images
- behind my closed eyelids. It looked like a duck staring at
- me-but I really don't know what it was, it wasn't moving though.
- What was really unique though is that the image was undulating
- like: (drawing in my notes). It looked like the undulations
- produced by dropping two rocks in the water. The bottom
- undulation was covering some type of landscape. Lost the
- image and woke up."
-
-
- 4>
- (Here's an example of meeting a thought-form.
- In this case, it was a thought-form of Superman!
- Thought-forms have no volition at all and often
- look like mannikins.)
-
- "...I was laying on my bed again, but I still felt my feet
- tipped upwards higher than my head. I was still a little afraid
- but I began tipping and sliding backwards again. I saw the green
- and purple spiral motion again, but this time I slid quickly though
- it. Next I recall, I was floating in a great darkness, but before
- me was a structure that looked to be made up of passages of flags
- or curtains draping downwards. As I got closer the passages seemed
- to form a maze. There was a figure floating at the entrance to
- this maze and as I got closer, I realized it was Superman! But
- Superman looked like a toy doll, or a manikin and he didn't look
- real at all. The expression on his face was completely immobile
- and looked like it was made out of plastic. I asked him if he was
- real, but I got no answer. Then I figured it was probably just
- a thought-form. I drifted past Superman into the maze of hanging
- flags. I noticed that the Superman thought-form was following me,
- but I didn't really care. I studied these flags and noticed that
- each one was of very specific colors. The colors seemed to be laid
- out on a black velvet background. Then it dawned on me that the
- colors that each flag was made up of was identical to the colors
- of a particular superhero's costume! I saw one that was mostly
- blue and red with a little yellow; that was Superman. Then there
- was one of red and blue with black in it; that was Spiderman.
- There was another one of yellow and red - and that was Ironman.
- As I stared at these I realized that they weren't really flags
- like I had supposed. They were more like strips of black velvet
- with colors laid out on them. The texture of the colors was very
- similar to the texture of colors on a flag (i.e. like dyed cloth)..."
-
-
-
- 5>
- (Here is an interesting encounter I had with a giant
- minotaur. I do not know if this creature was a thought-
- form or not. It seemed to display volition, but
- its behavior was highly repetitious, which makes me
- suspect this creature may have been a creation of
- my subconscious mind. At any rate, the following
- adventure is kind of comical. I suspect there is
- a lot of personal symbolism in this projection.)
-
- "...I had a false awakening. I awoke in bed, not realizing
- that I wasn't in my real bedroom. I was very excited about this
- adventure and my first thought was, "Wow! I have to call Rob and
- Joey and tell them about this projection." For some reason I
- thought it was mid-afternoon and I could get a hold of them on the
- phone. Then I looked over at the digital clock to see what time it
- was. But I couldn't read what time it was because I could see about
- twenty different times displayed at once, fading successively
- backwards. And I could also see the gears spinning around inside of
- the clock. "Goddamn!" I thought to myself, "I'm still projecting!"
- Still, I tried to read the time anyway. It seemed to say 6:47,
- but I was simply seeing too many numbers at once to be sure. But I
- knew for sure I was still projecting. I looked around. I was in a
- bare bedroom, with only my mattress and the clock. I seemed to be
- in an apartment. The door was open and went off into a hallway,
- and there was a window on the wall of the hall.
- I got up out of the bed and realized that my lockmold still felt
- incredibly stable, solid and wide awake. I walked out into the
- hall and looked out the window. Through the window I saw that I
- was quite a few stories off the ground, and there was an unfamiliar
- city off in the distance. I decided to fly about and explore. I
- passed very easily through the window and could even feel that
- weak tugging feeling as I passed through the window.
- I was now hovering in the air just outside. I could see that
- I was definitely about five stories up. It felt like sunset was just
- around the corner and the city lights were sparkling off into the
- distance. Beyond the city I could see countryside. Then I looked
- directly below me and got an incredible shock. Here I am hovering
- five stories up in the air, but down below me on the ground is a
- gigantic creature that looks like a centaur! It was easily three
- stories high. I freaked out! I was just gonna fly away and hope
- that it didn't see me. I tried to fly but I couldn't, it felt like
- I was locked in place.
- And then, as if in response to my desire to split, it saw me.
- It looked up at me and pointed at me and said in a low, deep,
- rumbling voice, "Excuse, me. Oh excuse me, sir, but I must ask
- a favor of you." I couldn't believe it, the thing's voice sounded
- like a low thunder filling the air.
- "Oh my God!" I thought to myself, "this is like something
- out of Jack and the Beanstalk. Wait till everyone hears about
- this one!" I was actually quite excited about the prospect of
- being able to brag about having met this creature. Still, I
- tried to ignore the thing and jet away, but I couldn't seem to
- get any leverage to move. As I was trying to pull myself away,
- the creature yelled up at me again, "Excuse me, sir, but I must
- ask a most important favor. Could you please assist me?"
- At this point, a gust of wind came along and grabbed me and
- carried me up, away from the creature, and around to the other
- side of the building. As I went higher up, I got an even better
- view of my surroundings, and I was much more interested in exploring
- these than in dealing with this unknown giant below me. Then I
- heard it yell again, "Sir, I said I need your assistance." I
- couldn't see it at this point, but its voice was like thunder.
- Then it riveted up into the air and spiraled around the building
- and began to follow me through the air.
- I wasn't scared by this creature. I actually felt bothered
- by it. I didn't have any sense that it wanted to hurt me. But I
- was actually being pulled by many desires - what should I do?
- All the while I was looking around at where I was at and I was
- in awe of the incredible beauty of the place I was in. The sun
- seemed to be coming up over the horizon behind the city, and the
- city itself glistened like so many jewels far below me. And once
- I got around to the other side of the building, off in the
- distance the sky was filled by huge billowing clouds draped
- across the sky in wave after wave. And if things hadn't been
- dramatic and spectacular enough to this point in the projection,
- I realized as I was looking at the clouds that there was a city
- built right into the clouds! It was like a fairy tale - a castle
- built into the clouds!
- My mind was spinning. I was attempting to assess what
- actual subplane I was on to encounter so many fantastic things.
- And I was wondering what this giant creature wanted from me, and
- how I could just get away from it. And once I saw the castle on
- the clouds, I decided that that was where I wanted to go. The
- wind was carrying me in that direction. The clouds themselves
- seemed to be getting bigger and bigger, dwarfing everything else
- in my view. They were beautiful as the rising (setting?) sun was
- shinning off them, making them look like some gorgeous pastel
- painting. There was an incredible vividness to everything; very
- real, but not like the physical plane. Everything seemed almost
- like claymation. But paradoxically, even though I was moving in the
- direction of the city in the clouds, it didn't seem like I was
- getting any closer to it. I began feeling frustrated that the
- wind wouldn't have enough power to get me to the city in the clouds.
- Then the creature, which had been flying after me, caught up
- to me and was now following alongside me in the air. "Shit, I
- guess there's no way I can avoid dealing with this guy," I
- thought, resigning myself to my obvious fate.
- "Sir," it said, rather impatiently, "I asked if you may assist
- me on a rather important matter." It was funny how formally and
- fairy-tale like it spoke. The centaur, flying along side me now,
- looked smaller up close, about twice as big as a horse. And it
- didn't really look like a centaur anymore. It seemed to be some
- type of a giant that was riding on a headless horse.
- Staring ahead towards the beautiful city on the clouds, I
- spoke to it, "Ok? What do you want?"
- It replied, "Sir, I need to find the whereabouts of a very
- important person."
- "Ok. Who is it? Tell me who you are looking for, and I'll
- help you find them," I answered.
- But it kept rambling in its thunder voice, "Sir, would you
- please give me your assistance?"
- Now I was getting impatient with it. "Who are you looking
- for?" I kept asking. But he just kept asking for my assistance,
- and all the while, as I was getting closer to the clouds, I was
- getting no closer to the beautiful city on the clouds. Next
- thing I knew, I was back in my physical body, laying in my bed.
- This time I was awake for real. I looked at the clock. It
- was 6:00. Only an hour had passed. I laid quite in awe at this
- unexpected adventure while I was gathering up my memories."
-
-
- 6>
- (Here is an example of me meeting strange fish
- creatures. I do not know what these creatures were,
- but I was afraid of them and responded accordingly.)
-
- "...When I stopped falling backwards, I had landed in a
- rather large room that seemed familiar to me, though I couldn't
- place why. The floor looked like it was made up of piles of long
- (5-10 feet) bean bag chairs and they were colored in blue and
- white, green and white, or red and white swirl patterns. This floor
- was lumpy, not at all smooth. When I had stopped from sliding
- backwards, I had stopped with my face pushed up against some kind of
- transparent wall that reminded me of an aquarium. I was looking
- through this wall into what seemed like a dark, watery medium.
- Then, something on the other side seemed to get up from the mud
- and swim away off into the darkness. This startled me and I pulled
- myself up. I stood up and stepped backwards away from the wall,
- but the colored "beanbag" that I had stepped on got up and swam out
- from underneath me! The floor was alive! This really scared me and
- I started to feel claustrophobic. I hovered up into the air, and
- this "beanbag' was actually a fish-like creature, maybe about 7
- feet long, colored in red and white swirls, and it was now swimming
- around through the air in the room. I hovered around trying to
- avoid it. It swam up to me as if to investigate me and it circled
- around me. I was too afraid to move. But then it got close
- enough to me and I punched its face. It swam over towards the other
- side of the room. I looked around me trying to get a better sense
- of where I was at and it was then I really noticed that the whole
- floor was made of these creatures! I was very afraid that they
- were all going to awake and start swimming around. Then another
- one did get up and start swimming around in the room. I flew up
- and hit this one too, but my movements were slow and jerky. I was
- very scared. I got a good look at the room I was in. It was
- circular, with a diameter of maybe 50 feet. The walls were
- transparent and there was a lot of motion and activity going on
- beyond the walls. I couldn't make out anything definite beyond
- the transparent walls, but it all seemed very biological. The two
- fish were swimming about, though keeping their distance from me.
- Then I faded and was back in my physical body...."
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
-
- Well, looking at the above entries, I wonder how justified
- I am in telling you not be scared, given that I *was* frightened
- in many of the episodes I reported above! Still, in the years I have
- been projecting, I have obviously survived all of these encounters,
- and during this time have learned not to be scared of the nonhuman
- entities I meet. Perhaps the scariest aspect of all this is the
- fact of the unknown. We are always scared in the face of the un-
- known, and most of my above reactions reflect this reflex. I
- can assure you though that as you get more proficient at
- projecting, and more familiar with the OOBE realm, you will
- become less and less afraid of what you encounter there. So, if
- you like, you can build on my experience and simply accept
- that you do not have to fear things you encounter in the OOBE
- realm. Otherwise, you can go through the same learning process
- I did. Whatever the case, the bottom line is never be discouraged
- and try to keep an explorer's attitude about your projections.
- When you project, you are entering the unknown and there is
- nothing you can do about this fact. As you transform the unknown
- into the known, your responses to the OOBE realm will transform
- too.
-
-
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 11
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_12.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 12 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 6
-
-
-
- B. Meeting People: Dead Verses Dreamers
-
- Meeting people in the OOBE realm is one of the most fascinating
- and eye-opening aspects of the projection experience. Now, there are
- a variety of aspects when it comes to meeting people during
- your OOBEs. First, some authors report that you can observe
- people who are on the physical plane while you are out-of-body.
- Monroe for example makes this claim. In my own personal
- experiences I have never been able to do this, except perhaps
- once during my very first astral projection and a couple other
- times that were, however, very ambiguous. So, if it is your
- intention to spy on people while you are out-of-body, good luck
- cause you're on your own - I have no experience with this to
- share with you!
- When I meet people during my projections, they are actually
- on the subplane I am on. And, like nonhuman entities, people you
- meet in the planes will respond to you in all manner of ways, from
- friendly to hostile to ignoring you.
- Now, theoretically, if you accept the occult viewpoint, there
- are two main classes of people you can meet during an OOBE:
- dreamers and deceased or "discarnate" humans. I think I
- have met both during different projections. Of course,
- it is very difficult to verify if someone you meet during an OOBE
- is a dreamer or a discarnate person. If you can get a name or
- address or phone number from the person, then you are doing very
- well and have some kind of evidence to determine if the person
- you met does or ever existed here on our physical plane. I will
- get more into the idea of questioning the people you meet during
- an OOBE below.
- Now, I suspect that there are different subplanes for dreamers
- and discarnate humans. I think that there is a "dreamers current"
- in the subplanes close to our physical plane, and it is on this
- "dream current" that most of us go every night when we dream. On
- the other hand, I think that the regions inhabited by discarnate
- people are "farther away" from the physical plane. Living people
- exude a different type of energy than do discarnate people, and
- as oil does not mix with water, I think that living people (i.e.
- dreamers) tend not to mix with the deceased, except under certain
- special conditions. For example, we have all heard stories
- of people meeting deceased relatives in their dreams. In this
- case, a strong emotional tie between the individuals either "pulls"
- the dreamer to the regions where discarnate humans dwell, or
- "pulls" the deceased person to the regions where dreamers dwell.
- If a strong enough force, or emotional resonance, is exerted, one
- could conceivably bring the deceased person's aura very close
- to the physical plane, in which case one may see ghosts. This
- latter idea is the basis of seances and spiritualism where, 100
- years ago, it was fashionable to attempt to communicate with
- deceased relatives.
- Now, how can you tell a deceased person from a dreamer? Again,
- there is no sure method to do so. It is only in extreme cases
- that you might be able to make a reasonable guess. You might
- think that by becoming lucid during a dream that the people
- around you are dreamers too, and this is a reasonable presumption.
- If you meet people in your OOBEs who are dressed in fashions from
- another era, this may be a clue that it is a deceased person.
- Likewise, if you find yourself in a region that looks like a
- past era, it is conceivable that the people there (if there are
- people there) are the deceased who lived in that era. However,
- there are simply no guarantees about this.
- The only way you can be sure you met a dreamer is by getting
- their name, phone number or address, remembering these upon waking
- and contacting the person here on the physical plane. Next, you
- will have to find out what this person looks like. If you can
- actually do this, and the person you contact here on the physical
- plane is indeed the person you met in your OOBE, then you can
- say pretty much for sure that this person was a dreamer. Actually,
- if you can bring a valid name and phone number back from a
- projection with you, you've done something quite amazing. I've
- never succeeded at doing this though I try every chance I get.
- I have never done this for reasons I will get to shortly.
- To be sure you met a deceased person you will have to go through
- a similar process; get the person's name, the general era in which
- they lived, where they lived, and if you can, some facts about
- their life. Then, again, presuming you can remember all this
- information upon waking, if you can verify this information, then
- you can say with a high degree of certainty that you met a deceased
- person.
- Now, the above methods are only valid for people that are
- strangers. Different factors seem to be operating if you
- meet someone you know during an OOBE. In many of my
- projections I have seen and interacted with my close friends.
- Throughout these notes I refer to a fellow named J.C., or John, and
- this is a close friend of mine who answers to both names.
- Numerous times I have met J.C. in my projections, yet I don't know
- what to make of my having met him during an OOBE. In some cases
- he was awake here on the physical plane when I met him in my OOBE.
- In other cases he was sleeping here on the physical plane when I
- met him in one of my OOBEs. I don't understand what is going on
- when I meet J.C. during an OOBE while he is awake here on the
- physical plane. Am I only conjuring up his image in my OOBEs
- (i.e. creating a thought-form of him)? That is, when I meet J.C. is
- he merely a hallucination within my OOBE? Alternatively, am I
- meeting a part of his subconscious mind in my OOBEs? I do not
- know the answers to these questions. I know that there is no
- apparent correlation between what he is doing while he is awake
- and what he was doing, apparently at the same time when I have
- met him in my OOBEs. Likewise, the times I've met him when he was
- in bed sleeping here on the physical plane, he has never once
- woken up and remembered meeting me in my OOBE.
- So, unlike other authors who claim to meet people they
- know during their OOBEs and later get confirmation of this meeting
- from the person here on the physical plane, I have never had
- such confirmation. I do not have the slightest clue what is
- going on when I meet people I know within one of my OOBEs. This
- is why I said above that the methods I suggest to use if you
- want to prove a person is a dreamer or deceased person will
- only work with strangers. If you can meet a stranger during an
- OOBE, then later, here in the physical world, actually confirm
- that that person does or did exist here in the physical plane,
- then you have gotten very strong evidence of meeting a bona fide
- person during your OOBE.
- However, I have had three experiences that are very close to
- being confirmations that I really did interact with a specific
- person during one of my OOBEs. In the first case, I had
- a long OOBE in one of those resting places for deceased
- people that I mentioned earlier. While I was in this
- "Rehab Center", I found a friend of mine who I knew
- from about 10 years prior. This frind of mine, whose name
- was Steve, had muscular dystrophy (and was confined to a wheelchair)
- and we were very good friends in junior high school. I lost
- contact with Steve during high school because I moved away and
- have never contacted him since. The only time I have seen
- Steve since junior high was in a projection I had in 1987.
- When I saw Steve in the projection, he was completely
- dazed. He was in a complete stupor (I will talk more about people
- being in a stupor immediatly below), and he did not recognize
- me. But it was Steve, in his wheelchair, looking very much like
- I remembered him. In the projection, I told him that he didn't
- need to be in a wheelchair because he was in the astral plane, and
- he could do anything he wanted, but he didn't seem to hear me.
- I then introduced him to a couple other guys that were in the
- room with us who were in wheelchairs too. These guys were
- much more lucid that Steve and they took to him. The three
- of them then wheeled off out of the room and I went on to
- other adventures in the projection.
- Well, it was maybe a year after this projection (1988) that I
- had found out that Steve had died in 1983. All I could
- figure is I found Steve in the after-death state.
- A second instance that I had during a projection that seemed to
- possess an uncanny validity also involved a deceased friend
- of mine. One of my very close musician friends committed suicide
- in 1987. About 6 months after his death, I saw him in a projection.
- He was complaining about how much the world sucked. He and I
- got in a big argument and I told him that just because he was dead
- didn't mean anything, he was still being an asshole and that he'd
- better quit feeling so sorry for himself and get his act together.
- In my mind, this was a very legitimate meeting. My friend, who obviously
- was so desolate that he took his life, had the same attitudes after
- death. For whatever reason, I was drawn to him in one of my
- projections, and I gave him my two cents worth! Whatever the case,
- I feel I really did meet him in the after-death state while I
- was out-of-body.
- Finally, my third close call was when I met one of my best
- friends during a projection. I came upon this friend, whose name
- is Tim, while I was flying through a strange city. Tim was sitting
- on the ledge of a building and naturally I was surprised to see him.
- I went over to him and started to talk to him. I knew that it was
- early Sunday morning and chances were good that Tim was home sleeping
- on the physical plane. I decided I would see if I could help him
- become lucid so that when he woke, he would recall our meeting.
- I told him that we were projecting and that we were in the world
- of dreams. At first he responded as if in a daze, but I started
- shaking him and kept telling him to wake up (i.e become lucid).
- Finally, he seemed to become himself, which is to say, he started
- to act lucid. I then showed him how to fly and we proceeded to explore
- the city we were in. I kept pointing things out to him, telling him
- to remember all we were seeing so that when he woke up he would
- remember it. I also kept telling him to call me as soon as he woke
- up. Well, we were together for a long time in the projection
- and I kept reminding him to call me when he woke up. Eventually,
- I lost him and continued with my projection. I woke up straight
- from my projection and it was about 11:00 AM. And then,
- within minutes of waking up from my projection, Tim called
- me! For real - on the physical plane! I was very excited, but
- didn't say anything to him about the projection. I asked him
- how long he had been awake, and he said he just woke up, which
- meant that he really had been sleeping at the same time I was projecting.
- I then asked him if he had had any dreams that he could remember.
- He couldn't remember anything though, but he said he had an urge
- to call me!
- So, these three episodes were the closest I have ever come to
- having a meeting with a specific person during an OOBE verified. Now,
- if you were a hardcore skeptic, you'd probably think I was grasping
- at straws, but, then again, if you are a hardcore skeptic, you have
- never even astral projected, so I'd ignore you.
- Still, in spite of these three provocative episodes,
- the fact that I have never been able, with any absolute
- certainty, to confirm the meetings I have with people during
- my OOBEs makes me leery of people who make such claims, and
- also makes me question just how far we can take the projection
- experience as occurring in some kind of "objective" world. However,
- because I have not done this does not mean it is impossible. To
- think such a thing would be completely foolish. Lots of people can
- do things I cannot do. So, the bottom line here is that I am
- in no position to pass judgement on people's claims of meeting
- and verifying meetings with other living (or deceased) people.
- I still remain open minded that it is possible to interact
- with other people (living or not) during an OOBE, and am constantly
- testing and looking for ways to verify the validity of my
- meetings with people, friends or strangers, during my own OOBEs.
-
-
-
- i. The Character of People In OOBEs
-
- Now, to explain what I was saying above about these friends
- of mine being in a daze, one of the most interesting things I have
- observed when meeting other humans in my OOBEs is generally how
- completely out of it they are. What I mean by this is that, when
- I meet people in my OOBEs, these people, more often than not, act like
- they are in a daze. In other words, they are NOT lucid. I will
- present a number of examples of this from my journal. In fact,
- when I meet a person who responds to me the way a person would
- respond to me here on the physical plane, I am very surprised.
- Let me elaborate on what I am saying here in more detail.
- When I meet people during an OOBE I ask them a number of
- questions. This has become a habit with me and I strongly recommend
- that you do this also. Here are some of the questions I will
- ask people I meet during my OOBEs:
-
- 1. What is your name?
- 2. Where are we? What city is this?
- 3. Did you know we are in the dream world right now?
- 4. What year is it?
- 5. Are you dead or are you dreaming?
-
- You have to imagine what you would think if someone came
- up to you out of the blue and just started asking you these
- questions. If someone came up to you and said, "Hey, we are
- dreaming right now", you'd think they were nuts or just being
- silly at the least. If someone asked you your name, or the date,
- or what city you were in, you would be able to answer this
- immediately. Well, the people I have met in my projections
- generally CANNOT answer these simple questions. I think this
- is one of the most amazing discoveries I have made in my OOBE
- explorations. That is to say, PEOPLE IN THE OOBE REALM ARE
- GENERALLY *NOT* AS LUCID AS PEOPLE IN THE PHYSICAL PLANE. You
- will be doing very well if you get yourself into a postion
- where you can either confirm or refute this statement.
- A typical scenario of me meeting a person in one of my OOBEs
- is as follows: I approach the person and they may or may not
- respond to my presence. If they do respond, it is a rather feeble
- recognition that I am there. I will then talk to the person, and,
- more often than not, ask the questions I listed above. And,
- more often than not, the person will NOT know their name, will NOT
- know where they are at, and generally speaking, will respond to
- me as if they are in a daze. Examples of this are below.
- Now, another thing I've learned to do is the following, and
- I will give examples if this below too. Sometimes I will be SLY with
- the person and not let on that I know I am astral projecting. I
- will approach the person and interact with them in a matter of
- fact way, without any indication that I know I am projecting.
- Whatever is going on, I will just go along with it. Then, out of
- the blue I will say something to the effect, "Hey, wake up,
- we are in the dream world; This is all a dream." Often, in such
- circumstances, the person looks at me as if I am joking or I am
- a nut. And then, I will float up about five feet off the ground
- and say, "Ha! Can you do this in the physical world?". When I do
- this, I often elicit a reaction of surprise from the person I am
- talking to. They no longer think I am joking! Often they are
- genuinely surprised. However, depending on the circumstances,
- they will either fall back into their catatonic stupor,
- or I will bring them into some kind of adventure or another.
- Another thing I do when I meet people during my projections
- is to teach them how to fly. The overwhelming majority of
- people you meet in your projections have no idea where they
- are at and what they can do. When you meet someone during an
- OOBE, you can teach them to fly. It's easy, it's fun, and, to
- some extent or another, you are helping that person out.
- Also, you will find situations where you can console
- people. You will find people who are scared or angry and violent,
- and, simply because you are lucid and know your "powers", you
- can often help mellow out both types of people. I will give examples
- of this kind of behavior too.
- Finally, before I start presenting journal entries, I want
- to comment about one last aspect of meeting people during your
- OOBEs. This involves trying to tell a person you meet that
- you are NOT in the physical world. This is the strangest thing
- to try to do. A number of times in my projections, while I
- am trying to tell someone that we are in the astral plane, it
- dawns on me how weird it really is to try to communicate this
- idea to someone else DURING A PROJECTION. See, we don't have such
- a problem here in the physical world. It's totally trivial if I come
- up to you and say, "Hey, we are in the physical world right now,
- and we are NOT in the dream world". You'd look at me and say,
- "yea, so what? big deal!" I mean, it is so obvious to us that
- we ARE in this physical world that we don't even think of any
- other possible way it could be. But imagine you are standing in
- the world of dreams trying to tell somebody that you are in the
- dream world and NOT in the physical world. It's almost
- paradoxical trying to do this. Don't forget, most of the people
- you meet out-of-body are NOT lucid. They have no idea where
- they are at in the first place, and then you come along and
- try to tell them that there is this place called the "physical
- plane" and that is where you come from, but that is not where
- you and this other person happen to be at at the moment. They
- generally do not get it. All I can say is, if you get the chance,
- try to tell someone you meet in a projection that you are not in
- the physical world.
- So, let me summarize this section:
-
- 1. People you meet during OOBEs can potentially be: in
- the physical plane, or dreamers, or deceased. However,
- it is very difficult to determine which is the case.
-
- 2. People you meet during OOBEs are generally in a catatonic
- daze. YOU will be lucid, but they will NOT be lucid.
-
- 3. Question people for as much information as you can.
- Ask the kinds of questions I have listed above; simple
- questions. This will get you two types of information:
- you will get information that could help verify if
- the person you meet exists on the physical plane, and
- you will get information that will allow you to gauge
- how lucid this person is.
-
- 4. Teach people how to fly, or help them if they need help.
-
- 5. Try to tell the people you meet during a projection that
- you are not in the physical world.
-
-
- Ok, let me give you some examples from my journal
- illustrating what I've said above.
-
-
- 1>
- (In this episode, from my very first full-scale
- projection, I had planned to go to J.C.'s room
- if I actually left my body. Our plan was that
- whoever got out-of-body first would go to the
- other's room and see what they were doing. And
- that's exactly what I did. Turns out in this case,
- what I saw actually happened, only my projection
- occurred about 3 hours after the events I saw.
- This was a fourth case that was a type of
- confirmation of the validity of what I saw,
- though this case too, like the other three,
- is ambiguous.)
-
- "...I remembered to try to go to John's room as we had
- planned... I stepped out into the hallway. It felt a little
- eerie, but familiar recognition made me feel good and only fed my
- enthusiasm to push on. I pushed forward about two feet, and
- instantly appeared going up the stairs to the third floor. I didn't
- quite think this at that point, but basically I quantized through
- space! I was three or so steps from the top so I made my way up.
- There was John's closet which was in the hallway in front of his
- room. Again the recognition filled me with enthusiasm. I turned
- and looked at his door and it was closed. I did my new trick and
- looked away, then looked back, and it was open.
- And there was John standing there facing toward me talking,
- and Gregor sitting on John's bed staring at the wall. I was so
- surprised that our experiment had worked that I very
- enthusiastically rushed into the room shouting, "J.C., Hey
- J.C.! I did it!". This was very strange because, as I yelled,
- my voice seemed to come out of me in slow motion as if someone
- were playing a 78 record at 16 speed. But at the same time, I
- was hearing this, I was hearing another "me" actually shouting
- out these things normally. But this voice sounded far in the
- background and behind the slower voice. As I'm realizing all
- this, meanwhile I'm rushing into the room trying desperately to
- get J.C.'s attention. But he doesn't notice me. I'm talking
- and shouting at him and trying to grab and shake him. But to
- my surprise my arms pass right through him as I try to grab him.
- I notice that John seems to be talking about something that quite
- enthuses him but his back is to Gregor, and Gregor doesn't seem
- to be interested anyway, he's just sitting on John's bed, smoking
- a cigarette and staring up at the wall.
- It occurs to me to try to look at the clock and see what time
- it is. The clock seemed to read 12:56, but I wasn't sure because
- it was blurry and not quite legible, no matter how hard I would
- try to focus on it. Then, I seemed, for no apparent reason at
- all, to completely lose interest in the situation. I turned and
- left the room.
- When I went back out into the hall, I looked into John's
- closet. There was now a window right in the middle of his closet.
- In the window was a pink rainbow swirling mist that enchanted me
- enough to want to dive right into it. I thought to myself, "Well,
- I've only gotten this far by pushin' on ahead!" And so I plunged
- into this glimmering, enchanting window. I really don't recall
- well what happened to me after this point, other than it really
- freaked me out in a very pleasant way..."
-
-
- 2>
- (Earlier, I presented me trying to pass through a wall
- [FILE 8, entry 7 under "b. Moving through walls"].
- Here are the events leading to that. This was the
- first time I met a "dazed" person during a projection
- and it was a little child. Note here also how I forgot
- the children's names upon waking. It is NOT easy
- carrying information from the OOBE state back to the
- waking state.)
-
- "...When I regained my vision I was standing on steps leading
- down into what appeared to be a basement laundry mat.
- It was very distinct - a perfect lockmold, and I felt
- very conscious. Yellow painted walls, pipes on the ceiling
- washing machines and wash tubs up and down the room. It was a
- corridor extending for about 300 feet. There were various other
- turns to my right but I did not explore these. To my left was a
- wall with windows at the top which seemed to be at ground level.
- All of a sudden, a little colored boy about 10 comes walking
- out of nowhere. He's wearing a blue parka but looks quite normal
- otherwise. I said "Hello. I love you" but he didn't seem to hear
- me. I thought "Wow! He must be sleeping" (that he was dead never
- entered my mind). I said "Who are you? What are you doing?" He
- still didn't seem to hear me even though he was looking right at
- me. I said "Who are you?" quite loudly in his face. He turned
- dazedly and started walking away from me and he was mumbling his
- name. I don't remember what he said, I forgot since I woke up.
- During the projection I heard it and it seemed to be quite important
- to me at that point. But he seemed uninterested in me and he
- disappeared into what I thought was a bathroom. I stood waiting
- for him and out of the same door comes a little white boy, about
- 10 or 11 years old. He had reddish brown hair in a bowl cut,
- wearing a green shirt and blue jeans. He was much more receptive.
- He came out and saw me and said "Where am I? I'm scared here". I
- said "Don't worry, you are only sleeping and you'll wake up soon.
- I asked him his name and he told me right away. But it seemed
- to "blend" with the other boy's name and I just can't remember.
- Then the little colored boy comes out with us. "How can we
- get out of here seems to be the mutual thought of all of us. All
- I could see as an escape route were the windows to our left. The
- windows were sunk back and about 7 feet off the ground. There
- were a series of pipes blocking the way so I hovered up into
- the air..."
-
- 3>
-
- (Another dramatic example of how UNLUCID people
- are that you meet in projections. Notice too here
- in this entry something I have found; that it is
- very difficult for me to read things during projections.)
-
- "...(I was flying through a sea of faces) As I was flying
- through the faces, I passed the face of a very beautiful woman and
- her beauty caught my attention so much that I reversed my motion
- until I came upon her face again. I stared very hard trying to
- focus my lockmold and I began to materialize again! And there she
- was standing in front of me, in the flesh! We seemed to be in the
- middle of an old west town and she was in line at the theatre or
- something. She was wearing a dark business outfit with green eye
- shadow and deep red lipstick. She didn't look as beautiful now as
- her face appeared in the sea of faces. I was standing there staring
- at her intensely and she looked at me and asked "Can I help you?"
- I asked her what city we were in, what is her name, what State
- is this. She looked at me pensively, then a look of confusion
- swept her features. Then, as a couple of policemen entered the
- street, she pointed to them and said "Why don't you ask them"? And
- she hurried off into the building we were in front of. I seem to
- recall her asking "Do you think I'm beautiful?" either when I first
- saw her or as she was leaving. At any rate, I went up to the
- policemen and asked them the same questions. And I got the same
- response! The cop I was addressing looked at his partner and
- they both shrugged their shoulders. I noticed a sign in front of
- a building and got the idea to go try to read it so I thanked the
- cops and hurried off. The sign was on some steps leading into a
- building and I got the sense that it was some kind of official
- sign. I tried to read it but had a very difficult time. I could
- not get it into focus that easily. All I could make out were
- the letters "OR", which for some reason I interpreted to mean
- Oregon, and the statement "Cheyan Country". At that moment I
- thought to myself "This sign is senseless. These dead people
- decorate their landscape, but there is no function for this sign
- it's just a decoration". I gave up my attempt to read the sign
- and walked back down the steps somewhat shaken up. I noticed my
- hand were in my pockets and thought to myself that I was glad I
- had materialized with clothes on this time. I wondered if the
- cops would have noticed had I been naked.
- I walked into the street again and tried to survey my
- surroundings. The sign gave me a definite impression of the
- Old West. The cops looked thoroughly modern though. The
- woman in green looked like someone from the late nineteen
- hundreds. The city itself seemed to be a cross between the
- 1920's and the 1950's in terms of the appearances of the
- buildings. The buildings were at most 5 stories high, some
- of yellow or red (like a rose) brick, others of the usual brick
- red color. I noticed I was on a dirt road. Then that flimsy
- feeling came over me again and I felt my lockmold fade.
- I was now in the void again..."
-
-
- 4>
- (Here is an example of teaching someone how to fly
- as well as being an example of my being "sly"
- with the person I meet. Again, by "sly" I mean
- going along with the person and whatever they are
- doing, even though I know I am projecting.)
-
- "...(I had become lucid during a dream. I was in a typical
- looking suburb...) Then I felt the heaviness come over me that
- indicated my lockmold was getting weak. I was afraid that if I
- just kept walking I would lose my lockmold, so I turned and walked
- back by the school.
- I met up with a young fellow who was walking home from school.
- I was really feeling my lockmold slip and I caught up with this kid.
- He was maybe a few years younger than me, heavyset and had greasy
- blond short hair and was wearing blue jean overalls. I approached
- him and asked if I could hold onto him because I was going to
- disappear otherwise. He was quite casual about it and said ok. So
- as we walked for a few yards, I clung on to him and I felt my
- lockmold return. It was stable but shaky and I knew I had to go
- along slow and not get too excited or I would lose it. We
- started talking and he asked me if I would like to go hunting or
- fishing with him. I really didn't want to, but I said ya anyway
- just to keep things smooth. I thought the hunting was to take
- place over a small hill that we were walking up and I ran forward
- to the top of the hill. The scenery had changed from suburban
- streets to a country-like environment and there were woods about
- and I saw a small lake about a quarter mile down beyond and
- through the trees. My friend laughed and said the fishing spot was
- over the ridge and that we had to stop at his house first.
- We took a turn down another road into the woods, past what
- I thought was a garage and came to a shack that was his house.
- We went inside and the place was very small. My friend's brother
- was there but he went into the bathroom. My friend told him to
- hurry because we were going to go fishing. While waiting I
- started talking some more.
- "What's your name?" I asked.
- "Cameron," he said.
- "Where you from?"
- "Cleveland," he said.
- I told him my name was Don. But I started getting bored
- and decided I was going to fly away and explore, so I went outside.
- I was about to fly off and Cameron came out.
- "Aren't we going to wait for my brother?" he asked.
- I told him I was going to fly away. He looked at me and
- started laughing as if I was joking, and he told me that I couldn't
- do that. I was ignoring him and ready to fly away. I jumped up to
- go but a tree got in my way and I only went up about 10 feet, so I
- smoothly landed back on my feet. Cameron looked at me in awe,
- his mouth open and eyes wide. I told him not to be so surprised,
- he could do it too if he wanted to. "Try it," I told him, "but
- first let's go into some open space." So we walked over to a gravel
- lot that was adjacent to his house. I encouraged him to go on and
- try to fly. So he took a long running start, like an airplane on
- a runway, and lifted off into the air with his arms flapping
- like a bird's wings. He went up about 5 feet off the ground and
- coasted a few feet before landing. I was standing there laughing
- cause he looked so funny flapping his arms. But I was still
- enthusiastic with the fact that he had got off the ground.
- "All right!" I said, "I knew you could do it!"
- Cameron was quite surprised and happy about his first flight.
- Now I decided I was going to be a show-off and show him how it was
- really done. "Watch this!" I said, and I shot straight up into
- the air, at least about 100 feet up. Cameron was down below me
- telling me something, but I couldn't make out what he was saying.
- I shouted back to him: "You should see the scenery from up here!"
- It was really quite beautiful. I could see for miles around me
- in all directions and I realized that this was one of the best
- lockmolds I had ever had while I was flying. I could see the
- landscape spread out below me. It was a large forest area dotted
- by numerous little lakes. It also looked like winter because
- everything seemed to have a thin layer of snow covering, though the
- water was sparkling blue where ever it was to be seen. I circled
- around in the air currents a few times to get a good view, as it
- seemed like I was now quite a few hundred feet up. I wanted to go
- explore, so I tried to make some direction with the wind, and I
- had began to drift away from Cameron and his house. Cameron was
- below me running and trying to stay up with me, and he was shouting
- at me telling me to come back. I could tell he didn't want me
- to leave and the wind was forcing me lower anyway. I began to
- circle downwards towards a small field next to the gravel lot
- where we started out. Cameron was running towards where I thought
- I was going to land, but as I got within 20 feet or so of the ground,
- I completely lost my lockmold and was laying in my bed wide
- awake. I felt very refreshed upon waking."
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 12
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_13.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 13 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 7
-
-
-
- B. Meeting People (continued from FILE 12)
-
-
- 5>
- (Apparently, sometimes we astral projectors must
- look like ghosts to the people we meet in the
- planes. This is a cute episode where *I* ended
- up scaring instead of being scared!)
-
- "...At first the darkness was very "electric." Eventually
- the void seemed like a heavy fog. I got the idea to try to look
- at my hands. Watched my body and a red tile floor materialize
- around me as the fogginess of the void faded away. I was in an
- empty room with a red tile floor, it seemed like a small gymnasium
- or something. I started walking and noticed that my footsteps were
- very noisy. There were two open doors. One led out to a hallway,
- the other led to a storage closet. There was a light on in the
- storage closet and I heard someone moving and stacking chairs..
- I approached the lit closet nervously and a little scared, not
- knowing what to expect. There was another entrance to the storage
- closet out in the main hallway, and as I walked by I saw a pile of
- chairs go crashing out into the hall. Then I heard grumbling and
- complaining come from the storage closet. I became a little
- amused and hovered out near the door to peek into the storage
- closet and see who was in there. Then, a guy dressed like a
- janitor walked out of the storage closet. He looked up and saw
- me floating there and I obviously startled him because he gasped
- at me. The whole situation was becoming very amusing to me so
- I flew down closer towards him. He ran scared back into the
- storage closet. I hovered for a second outside the door to the
- closet and the janitor reappeared, this time carrying a large
- garbage can, which he then proceeded to throw at me. He missed
- me and the garbage can struck the wall next to me, but I was
- surprised nonetheless. He ran back into the storage closet and
- I flew up towards a vent by the ceiling. I pulled the vent
- open and tried to climb into it, but I lost my lockmold and was
- back in my physbod."
-
-
- 6>
-
- (Here's one time when John and I, who shared a
- room at college were both sleeping. I projected
- and saw him sleeping on his bed and I tried to
- wake him while I was out-of-body.)
-
- "...Having some kind of dream. Had a false awakening, except
- I figured I was either awake, or maybe I could project. Tried to push
- out of my body. I was gyrating wildly. I flopped out sideways, like
- a fish, onto the floor next to my bed. I was in my bedroom. Stood up
- and went over to where J.C.'s bed was (he was sleeping there for real on
- the physical plane).
- I nudged him, "John, wake up."
- He rolled over, half awake, looking up at me.
- "John, it's me," I said, "Can you see me?"
- He said, still half asleep, "Ya, I know it's you."
- He didn't seemed too thrilled.
- "Can you see me? I'm projecting right now. I'm in my astral body."
- He said, "You look like a haze."
- I asked him, "Can you see my physical body lying on my bed?"
- He said he couldn't. But it was dark in the room and I figured he
- couldn't see my physbod in my bed because there was no light. So I
- stood up and told him to watch me. And I shot up through the ceiling.
- I felt myself pass outside, but at the same time I completely lost
- my lock-mold..."
-
-
- 7>
- (The following is an interesting episode. I
- met a stranger, a woman, and I think she may
- have been a deceased person. This, I feel, is
- an example of consoling a person.)
-
- "...Felt myself laying on my bed again. I didn't make any
- attempt to "push out" though, I just started flying forward through
- the void. Almost instantly, a scene materialized around me.
- It seemed to be dusk, and I was standing on the front lawn of
- a house overlooking an unfamiliar neighborhood. It reminded me
- somewhat of the older and bigger houses in Detroit. There were
- a few people walking about on the sidewalks. I noticed a woman
- coming up the sidewalk that passed in front of where I was at.
- Without really thinking, I ran across the lawn, jumped the row
- of bushes separating the lawn from the sidewalk, and stood there
- on the sidewalk waiting for this woman to approach. She was an
- older woman with graying blond hair, wearing a long brown coat.
- She was acting scared as if she wanted to avoid me. She was
- only a few feet from me and I asked her, "What's your name?"
- She stopped, but turned away from me and said, "I don't
- look at faces."
- I could sense her fear and caution and I said, "Don't worry,
- I know how people are up here."
- Then she turned back towards me, brightened up with interest
- and said, "You do?"
- I was glad to have gotten her attention. But then I noticed
- as I was staring at her face, that her features kept shifting from
- that of an old lady to that of a beautiful young woman. Looking
- into her eyes I said, "You're very beautiful."
- She giggled embarrassed. I didn't know if I should make a
- sexual move on her or not. I decided against it cause it was
- obvious that she had been afraid, but now I had her confidence.
- I realized that she seemed scared and lonely and I figured she
- simply needed to be consoled. I hugged her and we began walking
- off. Then I faded out..."
-
-
- 8>
- (This is one of the most interesting times I've met
- someone I knew during an OOBE. The fellow I meet,
- Eric, was a good friend I jammed with in a band.
- He had left school, but I was still at school. I
- met Eric while I was projecting. It seems very
- reasonable to conclude that where I ended up going
- in my projection was where Eric happened to go that
- night in his dreams. I tried to get him to call me.
- Notice how little lucidity he has. Also, note how
- I am "sly" in interacting with Eric.)
-
- "...Had been up all night studying for an exam and gabbing
- with John. Went to bed about 5:00 AM. I fell asleep almost
- immediately. Next thing I knew I was walking thru a dance club,
- very reminiscent of the Detroit dance club scene. The place was
- large and dark, and there was a huge dance floor filled with very
- underground looking people. I was not lucid at this point, but I
- had a very strong feeling that something was up. I walked off of
- the dance floor into another room that was a bar. Sitting at
- the bar was my good friend Eric, with whom I had jammed in a band.
- When I saw Eric it dawned on me - I was in the dream world! And
- also, at this realization, I most definitely experienced the
- "headrush" feeling. My lucidity was incredible. Everything was
- absolutely clear and vivid. I felt exactly like I do when I'm
- awake. Once my lucidity clicked in though, I became very aware of
- my potential to fade out so I moved very slowly and carefully.
- I approached Eric, vividly aware that we were in the dream
- plane. I decided not to say anything to him about this fact at
- first. I wanted to experiment and play with the situation. I
- approached him exactly as I would have done if I really had
- unexpectedly run into him in a club on the physical plane. I
- casually walked up to the bar and nudged him.
- "Eric, what's up?" I said, extending my hand in greeting.
- He turned and recognized me and showed the typical surprise
- one would show when seeing a friend one hasn't seen for a while.
- We hadn't seen each other for over a year.
- "Don!, How are you?" We were shaking hands. Eric had a
- drink in his hand and he was acting as if he was slightly drunk,
- which I found quite novel knowing that we were in the dream world
- and one's dream body simply cannot get drunk!
- We gabbed about what we had each been doing since we last
- saw each other. Eric told me that he was working at a radio
- station (which was true, and I knew this anyway). I told him I
- was still in school working towards graduation. I kept up this
- small talk, but I was trying to figure out what I should do next.
- Finally, right in the middle of our small talk, I looked at Eric
- and very casually, but seriously said, "By the way, Eric, we're
- dreaming right now."
- He looked at me and started laughing as if I was joking.
- I responded, "Look, Eric, I'm totally serious. I'm in Houghton
- right now, and my body is sleeping in my bed. You and I are on
- the astral plane right now."
- Eric said something about me always having been a great kidder.
- There was a young woman sitting next to Eric at the bar and
- she was listening to us. She looked at me very snidely in response
- to what I was saying. I looked at her and said, "Look, woman,
- We're dreaming right now. Just wake yourself up, then you'll
- believe me." Then I made some nasty remark to her about the fact
- that she was just another typically stupid dreamer. Meanwhile,
- Eric was watching this getting a big kick out of it.
- Then I felt myself begin to fade out. I grabbed Eric and
- said, "Uh oh! Look, Eric! I'm gonna disappear right before your
- eyes, then you'll know that this is a dream!" And I was gone.
-
- {At this point read, FILE 10 , entry 3 under "iv. The Surreal Regions"}
-
- ...This time I tightened my focus so much that the entire bar
- scene faded in around me! I was back in the bar again!
- My lockmold was again very strong, but again, I moved slowly
- and cautiously so as not to get too excited and fade out. I
- wondered if Eric was still here. I walked off the dance floor,
- through a neon lit hallway, back into the bar where I had seen
- Eric. And no shit - there he was in the same room! I was
- extremely lucid and I really had to fight to keep myself calm
- because I knew I would fade if I got too excited.
- This time Eric was standing next to the wall and he seemed
- much drunker than before. Not only that, he was acting incredibly
- unlucid, just like any other ordinary dreamer. This time, I
- decided, I wouldn't waste time with small talk. An idea occurred
- to me. I went up to him, grabbed him and said, "Hey, Eric, I'm
- back."
- "Hey, Don, where'd you go?" he said smiling and slurring
- his speech. Just that I got this response from him was amazing
- because it implied an interesting memory continuity.
- Very seriously I said to him, "Look, Eric, we are dreaming.
- Didn't you see me disappear? Can't you understand? This is a
- dream!"
- His attention, however, was wavering. I didn't seem to
- be getting through to him. I shook him and continued, "Look,
- Eric, I'm in Houghton right now sleeping. I want you to wake
- up and call me on the telephone right now. My number is 7449.
- Do you understand? 7449. Wake up and call me."
- For an instant it seemed that he had come out of his dreamer
- mind and seemed to be understanding what I was saying. A glint
- of recognition passed over his features. I repeated my phone
- number and told him to wake up and call me.
- He said, "7447." I corrected him, but he just kept getting
- the phone number more and more wrong. At this point now, we
- were both floating about five feet off the ground, and we were
- in front of a long mirror up over the bar. I turned Eric towards
- the mirror.
- "Look," I said pointing into the mirror, "We're floating,
- Eric. You can only do stuff like this in a dream. Don't you
- get it? We're dreaming Eric!"
- Again, a definite glint of recognition passed through
- his eyes. For a second he seemed to understand the situation.
- I started shaking him violently, telling him to wake up while I
- was repeating my phone number to him.
- As we were floating, I looked over on the wall and saw a
- flyer posted there that said something about Ferndale. I
- thought, "he knows I'm from Ferndale". I pointed it out to
- him, but continued pleading to him to wake up and call me.
- But by now he was acting, not only like a typical
- dreamer, but like he was very drunk as well, and I gave
- up on him. He began to float away from me, what little
- lucidity he did display was completely gone. "This is
- futile," I thought, and I let him float away..."
-
- {I then went on, in this same projection to meet the flying minotaur
- which is described in FILE 11, entry 5, under "Nonhuman Denizins
- Of The Planes "}
-
-
- 9>
- (Sometimes you will encounter a person who appears
- highly lucid. The following entry is such an example.
- As you will see, I was surprised by this woman's
- lucidity and actually had a somewhat meaningful
- conversation with her. I think she was a dead
- person from the past.)
-
- "...(I had been in a surreal space, the...) I "bent" out of
- the crystal and was standing in a relatively large, very beautiful
- room. It looked Victorian in its decor. There was a butler
- standing there shinning shoes and staring at me. I ignored him,
- and looked about the room. It was very elegant. Intricately
- etched wood lined the contours of the wall and a large beautiful
- tapestry covered most of the wall next to me. A large glistening
- chandelier hung from the ceiling. Large windows on the opposite
- wall revealed a court yard outside and beyond this, a mansion-like
- building with stained glass windows. I was very impressed. I
- haven't been in such a beautiful place out here in the planes
- for a while. There was a smaller room cut off from the first
- by intricately carved wood dividers. I looked into this smaller
- room and saw that it was a dining room. Then I felt myself
- begin to fade. I quickly clung to the wooden divider and
- concentrated on stabilizing myself.
- Luckily, I restabilized myself. I went back around to where
- the butler was shinning shoes. He was an older man, bald on top,
- curly gray hair around the sides. He was wearing spectacles and a
- typical butler outfit. He seemed to be slightly attentive to my
- presence and he looked at me with a leer. On a small table next
- to the butler was a dish of brown pudding with little bits of
- chocolate in it. I went up, completely disregarding the butler,
- figuring he was at best half conscious anyway, and took a handful
- of the pudding. It tasted great! I proceeded to eat most of it.
- The butler seemed irritated but I continued to disregard him.
- Beyond him I saw a group of women sitting in front of the big
- windows on the opposite wall. I rudely and purposely climbed
- over the butler (with an attitude akin to what Monroe calls a
- "wild one") and approached the women.
- There were four women sitting there in front of the window.
- One was seated in the center in what looked like a throne and
- she appeared to be in her 30s. She had a sophisticated beauty
- about her. She was dressed in Victorian finery and I thought
- that she might be nobility. Surrounding her were three older
- women and they looked to be in their 50s. They looked like old
- maids. As I neared the window I was captured by the beauty of
- the building across the courtyard. As the women noticed I was
- approaching I spoke out:
- "This is some great pudding."
- The younger woman in the middle addressed me immediately,
- "Oh my," she said, "you seem to have eaten all of Ducheme's
- (pronounced "due shames") pudding!"
- She spoke with confidence and surety and I was very
- surprised by this. Usually the people I speak with in my
- projections are idiots. This woman was not. She seemed
- as lucid as I was. Meanwhile, the three older women eyed me
- with suspicion but said nothing.
- "That's a beautiful building over there," I said, pointing
- out the window across the courtyard, "What is it?"
- "Oh yes, it is very beautiful," she agreed, "It is our
- clothes palace."
- I was not sure what she said, "I'm sorry, I didn't understand
- you."
- It is our clothes palace," she repeated.
- "Wow! A whole palace just to store their wardrobe", is what
- I thought. I was surprised and taken aback by this woman's
- lucidity, the quickness and relevance of her responses. Such
- communication is rare for me out here. I thought that she must
- be a dead person still living out her astral life. I struggled
- for a moment trying to think how best to respond to this unique
- circumstance. All I figured to ask her is "What year is this?"
- "1890," she said.
- "Wow! She is dead!" I thought. There wasn't the least
- indication she was constructing her responses from my thoughts.
- Her responses were too natural for that. Besides, I would have
- felt it if she was pulling concepts out of my mind. Also, I
- asked her this question in total sincerity, with no preconceived
- notion of what answer I would get.
- "Wow!" i exclaimed, "I'm from the future. I've come from
- the year..." For the life of me I couldn't remember what year
- it was back on the physical plane! I was stymied. I struggled
- trying to remember. I knew it was 19 something, but what? All
- I could blurt out was, "the nineteen eighties." But the whole
- situation was making me too excited. My lockmold began fading
- and so did I. My vision was gone, but I heard her say, "My how
- interesting..." Then my hearing was gone too. I awoke back in
- my physbod frustrated by losing the opportunity to converse
- further with her, but also happy that I had encountered her.
- I don't think I ever had such a natural and meaningful conversation
- with anyone in a projection before this."
-
-
- 10>
- (Here's an example of a time I was at a "rehab center"
- which is one of the places that recently deceased
- people go. The following excerpt is from a very
- long projection. I was in this place for a long
- time. Here I am only presenting one particular
- meeting from this projection. I met a man who I
- suspect had just died (of course I have no way
- to confirm this, though you will see I tried to
- get information from him). He was in bad shape
- and needed help of sorts, as you will see.)
-
- "...I was in the void and I struggled immediately to fade back
- in. I spun round and round, and faded in again at the place I had
- just left. It was apparent to me by now that I must be at some
- tremendous rehab center, like the type Robert Monroe described
- in his books. I was standing outside by the entrance I had seen
- moments ago. Through the door I could see the bar I was just at.
- When I actually faded in, I found myself flopping around on the
- ground like a fish out of water. When I had completely
- materialized, I pulled myself to my feet and jumped through an
- open window next to the entrance doors. I found myself in a
- room adjacent to the bar, and I saw the bar in the next room over.
- This room was little, with pasty green walls and a wooden table
- in the middle of the room. There was a steam radiator against the
- wall and a wooden bench next to this, and a bum was sleeping on the
- bench. There were two doors; one leading back to the bar, the other,
- opposite this, closed. There was a hospital push cart sitting in
- front of the closed door and there was a guy wrapped in bandages
- sitting on this cart. He was staring at me and I started to say
- something to him. He seemed angry at me and then he lunged at me
- and attacked me. Needless to say, I was surprised. I said
- something to him to the effect, "That was the wrong move buddy, I
- know more about what's going on around here than you do. There ain't
- no way you can hurt me. And I know that you don't know I can't
- hurt you." Actually I wasn't in the least bit angry or mad at him
- cause I'm sure he had no idea what was going on. Still, I felt
- like being macho, and I had to do something to settle him down.
- I flipped him to the floor and started pounding him into the
- ground. I literally flattened him out like a pancake! It was
- like a cartoon. But when I saw that he wasn't being aggressive
- anymore, I stopped thrashing and helped him "pop" back out to
- 3-D , and helped him to his feet.
- He seemed surprised that neither of us was in the least
- bit scathed after our scuffle. His attitude was significantly
- different. He was more submissive and friendly. He got back on
- his cart and I started to push him out towards the bar. I asked
- him if he was dead (seeing that he was on the hospital stretcher
- and all). Quite to my surprise, he said he had died the night
- before. I asked if maybe it's that he's been dead for a year (As
- I write this entry I don't remember what my logic was in asking
- him this). He said something about getting into a fight with his
- Dad. I asked him where he was from and he said "the Land-O-Lakes,
- from Idaho." I asked for his address but he mumbled nonsense.
- He told me his name but I can't remember it now. His demeanor
- was interesting. He seemed contemplative, quite absorbed in his
- thoughts. He had responded more intelligently to me than anyone
- had to this point in the projection. I wheeled him up to another
- door and faded out..."
-
-
- 11>
- (Here is an example of how paradoxical it is to try to
- tell someone you meet that you are in the astral plane.)
-
- "...What the situation was was that, during an episode I had
- met an unfamiliar girl. We fell in love immediately and became
- lovers (and the feelings were quite sincere, I should add). I knew
- I was projecting, but everything was extremely real and I even felt
- that I did not have to go back. I felt that, if I chose, I could
- simply forget entirely about my physical plane life and stay right
- where I was at, and it wouldn't have bothered my soul in the least.
- I knew I could do this if I really wanted, and I was tempted by
- the possibility, but I ultimately decided that I would go back.
- At any rate, my lover and I had gone through some adventures
- together. We were coming out of a movie, and I felt I would have
- to spring the truth on her. I told her that I couldn't stay with
- her because I was from another plane of existence. She didn't
- follow me at first, so I elaborated and told her how I had a
- physical body and that it was sleeping back in the physical world,
- and that I'd soon have to go back there. She looked at me, with
- so much love in her eyes, and she thought I was joking with her.
- She said as much and gave me a hug and a kiss. I was completely
- lost for words and just left it at that. As it turns out, we
- started getting sexual shortly thereafter, and naturally, once I
- started getting sexually excited, I faded out.
- Now what was significant about this particular episode was
- when I was trying to explain to her that I was from the physical
- world. Here we are, her and I, walking arm in arm, down a sidewalk
- in the middle of the city. And I'm trying to tell her I'm
- from the physical world. But where I was standing at that moment
- felt just as real, if not more real than anything in my physical
- experience. To say that where I was standing at that moment was
- not real, not physical, sounded absurd even as I was trying to
- explain to her. I realized that it is impossible to really
- convey to these people in the astral world that they are not in
- the "physical world". To them, where they are at is completely
- real - to them. They don't have physical bodies to go back to.
- And dead people forget very quickly their physical lives. I knew
- I was in a realm of "dead people" - I just knew, instinctively.
- Dreamers act stupid - they do all the things that we, you and I,
- the people who dream, know we do in our dreams. Where I was at
- in this experience was simply life as usual. I was in some
- astral town where astral people (who we would call "dead people")
- were simply living out their astral lives, completely unaware
- that our physical plane exists.
- This was not to be the last time that I would confuse
- an astral person by telling them that they were not in
- a "physical" world."
-
- 12>
- (This final entry I shall present about meeting people
- was actually posted here on CompuServe the day after
- the projection occured (Dec. 14, 1992). In this
- projection I met someone who was aware that he was
- dreaming. This was a most astonding experience on my
- part and the first time anything like this has ever
- happened to me. You will notice, first, that I tried
- to get verifyable information from this person, and
- second, how difficult it was for him to concentrate.)
-
- "...The final episode I recall was the most dramatic. I was
- moving in the void and somehow locked into an episode. I seemed to
- be on an outdoor patio in a park or something. There was a group
- of people sitting at a picnic table and a few feet away another
- group sitting at one of thoses round, white metal patio tables.
- They seemed to all be together. I approached them with my standard
- question of the evening: I asked them if anyone knew the date. I
- got a bunch of nonsensical answers from the people at the round
- table, things like "Its the 2nd". I'd say "the 2nd of what?" and
- get no reasonable response. But then one of the guys at the picnic
- table said "There is no date, this is a dream". I heard this and
- was startled like I haven't been in a long time. I turned around
- and began talking to this guy. He was looking at all his friends
- as if to say 'you dummys, there can't be any date now because we
- are dreaming'. He looked to be about 35, brown hair, had on
- preppy clothes and looked about as modern American as you can get.
- I became very excited. I asked "you know we are dreaming?" He
- acknowledged this. I couldn't believe how lucid *he* was. He
- seemed confused a bit, as if he was not used to being so lucid
- while he was dreaming. I assured him he was correct.
- I said "That's right we are dreaming right now." Then I
- asked him where he was from. He said Minneapolis, Minnesota, and
- made some little joke about the town and chuckled. Again, I was
- overwhelmed by his lucidity. His answers were quick and succinct,
- though he had that subtle confusion that comes with being lucid
- in the dream world when you are not used to doing so. He looked
- as if he was surprised by his own responses as much as I was. I
- told him that I too was dreaming and that I was from Detroit,
- Michigan. I told him that we were both dreaming right now and
- then I asked him again what was the date. He thought about it
- for a second and said "The 21st, no, no, the 2nd of December".
- I sh*t my pants! He *was real*. I couldn't believe it! This had
- never happened to me before. I immediately said, "Look, tell me
- your name and phone number and I am going to wake myself up right
- now and call you in Minneapolis". He told me his name, which I
- do not remember now. He was sitting there trying to recall his
- phone number. I could tell he was having difficulty in doing so,
- which is not uncommon for me even when I project. And then,
- almost without warning, I faded out and was lying awake in my
- bed. As I felt myself fading I became infinitely disappointed. I
- awoke thinking "So close, yet so far". Yet, at the same time, I
- was very excited. This is the first time I ever met and talked
- to anyone in a projection that was so lucid and had a grip over
- physical memories like this guy did. I laid in bed for a few
- moments trying to gather the memories together, then I fell
- asleep for the night."
-
- (END OF ENTRIES)
-
-
- To wrap up this section on meeting people during OOBEs, I
- would like to make a couple of closing comments. At the start of
- this section I discussed ways to verify your meetings with
- people you encounter while in the OOBE realm. However, after
- reading through the excerpts from my journal, I hope you can
- appreciate just how difficult acquiring such information is.
- There are two factors that make this a difficult endeavor.
- First, as we have seen, is the fact that people are usually
- in a daze when you meet them in a projection. You ask them
- a simple question like "What is your name?" and you get
- a garbage answer, or mumbo jumbo, or they say "I don't know".
- Thus, if you can't get any information from them in the
- first place, you are obviously in no position to verify this
- person's identity, whether they were dreaming or were deceased.
- Now, the second reason it is so difficult acquiring verifyable
- information during an OOBE has to do with retaining the information
- you get. For, as is illustrated in the above entries, it is
- very difficult to remember simple facts or details that you
- learn in a projection. Many times someone would tell me their
- name or some other simple data, and I would forget what they
- said almost as soon as it was said. Or, perhaps I would remember
- during the projection, but once I awoke I would forget the
- information before recording it in my journal. And because
- I forget this information so easily does not mean I have a bad
- memory. Whatever is going on here is just not that simple.
- There is something about being lucid in the OOBE realm
- that makes it inherently difficult to remember stuff. And
- further, the process of carrying the information back here
- to the physical plane is also another factor that can cause
- one to forget what occurred during the projection. This is
- why I stressed early on the need to strengthen your ability
- to remember dreams and to always lay and try to remember
- as much of your projection as you can as soon as you wake up,
- or to make mental notes to yourself while IN the projection; all
- of these things help strengthen your memories so you can carry
- them across the border between the physical and the dream realms.
- So, the bottom line is that getting verifyable information
- during an OOBE is no easy task. Some people (especially
- parapsychology types) have simplistic and naive
- notions about acquiring information during an OOBE, as if
- memorizing a fact while out-of-body is the same as memorizing
- a fact while in your body. This just isn't what's going on.
- To repeat: it is hard to get simple facts out of the people
- you meet during an OOBE and, it is also abnormally difficult
- to retain these facts if you get them. If they are not immediately
- forgotten during the OOBE, then they can easily be forgotten as
- one's consciousness passes from the OOBE realm back to the physical
- realm. And again, these factors have nothing to do with how
- good or bad your memory skills are here on the physical plane
- when you are awake. These memory problems seem to be inherent
- to the OOBE state itself and to the nature of the transition
- from being lucid in the OOBE to returning here to the physical
- world. This fact is probably a vital clue to the nature of the
- OOBE state and its relationship to our waking consciousness.
- So, what can you do about this? I cannot stress enough
- how important the memory exercises I prescribed are. You
- have to do everything in your power to strengthen the memory
- connection between your waking and your dream mind, and you have
- to very conscientiously work to remember both your dreams and
- your OOBEs. You have to work to develop habits that will ensure
- that you can successfully carry your memories back and forth
- between this physical world and the world in which OOBEs and
- dreams occur. Obviously, these memory problems are not insurmountable
- barriers as my recorded experiences attest to. Once again,
- practice makes perfect and the more you practice, the more
- likely you will be successful.
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 13
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_14.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 14 of 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- IN THE OOBE REALM - PART 8
-
-
- 8. Getting Into Trouble
-
- During an OOBE, there are two ways to get into trouble:
-
- a. Threatening situations
- b. Being a trouble maker
-
- I will not dwell on these at any great length, but I do want to comment
- on them. The first way to get into trouble is if you find your-
- self in a threatening situation. I've discussed this off and on
- throughout these notes, so I will only summarize salient points
- you should remember if you feel you are in a threatening situation
- while out-of-body.
- What kind of threats can you face during an OOBE? Well, you
- can meet hostile entities, or you may find yourself in a region
- that feels threatening. In either case, as I have said throughout,
- such circumstances are in reality NOT threatening situations.
- You must remember that you are basically indestructible during
- an OOBE and nothing can harm you. I have found occasion to
- remind myself during an OOBE that I too am one of God's creations,
- and I personally have a faith that says God doesn't go around
- needlessly hurting (its?) creations. God doesn't hurt us, we hurt
- ourselves. And more often than not, we hurt ourselves because
- we are ignorant of causes and effects. During an OOBE the *causes*
- of whatever threatening situation we may find ourselves in are
- our own fears, subconscious or conscious. Fear is destroyed
- by the light of awareness and understanding. So, the way to
- deal with scary situations during an OOBE is to overcome
- your fears of things you do not understand. Like I said,
- there is a process of growth and maturity involved in the
- attempt to learn to astral project, and sooner or later, you
- will have to face this. There is nothing wrong with facing this.
- It is good to face it. It's called "growing" .
- Now, a much more serious possibility of a threatening
- situation you may find yourself in has to do with your physical
- body. It is possible that you may experience unpleasant
- effects in your physical body when trying to project. I, for
- example, have a number of times returned from an OOBE and,
- upon waking, had a terrible headache. I have always had migraines,
- evern before I started projecting, but a number of times after
- projecting, I would wake up with a full scale migraine. I
- haven't any certainty of why this happens to me, but it does.
- I have noticed that if I go without sleep, such as when I
- stay up all night studying for an exam, that I will also
- get my migraines. I suspect the connection between migraines
- and OOBEs in my case has to do with lack of sleep. When
- out-of-body, you are NOT sleeping, you are in a trance.
- Being in trance is apparently a different physiological condition
- than being asleep, and my body *sometimes* treats an OOBE as if I had
- gone without sleep.
- I want to stress loud and clear that I get migraines whether
- I project or not. I believe that getting these headaches is
- specific to me. If you do not regularly get migraines, then
- you will probably not have this problem.
- And on the other hand, I want to stress that very often,
- upon waking from an OOBE, I feel great. I feel light and tingly.
- I have not counted, but I know I experience this pleasant
- feeling upon waking from an OOBE much more often than I experience
- the headaches upon waking.
- Another thing you have to watch out for involves what
- occultists call "kundalini". I do not want to go into a full
- scale definition of kundalini here. But for our purposes, we
- can define kundalini as a *latent* energy that each of us posesses.
- When this energy is "awakened" or brought out of its latent
- state, it causes us to have psychic abilites, among other things.
- It is the kundalini energy that is in large part responsible
- for the ability to project/have an OOBE. The chills and shivers
- you may feel as you go deeper into trance are a result of
- awakening your kundalini.
- Kundalini is a very powerful energy and there is a
- possibility that it may affect your physical body. Like I said,
- as you go into trance you may feel chills or shivers. You may
- feel a pressure at the back of your neck. You may feel a
- pressure between your legs at your sex organs. Most of the time,
- such sensations are harmless. However, if you feel any kind of
- sensations while trying to leave your body that cause pain, then
- stop. Don't force yourself. Just stop trying to project and
- try again later. Such pain is a result of the kundalini energy
- doing things prematurely and, if you force this energy too
- soon, you WILL hurt yourself.
- I don't want to scare anybody saying these things.
- However, it is something you need to be aware of. Chances are
- you will NEVER experience any kundalini induced pain. This
- is rarely reported by people that project. However, I once felt
- a strange pain between my legs and I didn't force it. I just
- stopped trying to project for that session. And I was fine.
- Nothing bad happened to me, and I have never since experienced
- anything similar. Again though, I am pointing this possibility
- out to you just in the rare case that you do feel pain in your
- body when trying to project. To repeat: you will probably
- NOT have to worry about this.
-
- The second aspect of getting into trouble during an OOBE
- is by being a trouble maker in the OOBE realm. Robert Monroe
- discusses such people and calls them "wild ones". Usually
- these are deceased people who have begun to realize that they
- can fly, pass through walls, create things (thought-forms) with
- their mind, etc. These people will act in ways that we
- would consider "mischievious" or maybe even downright belligerent.
- Now, once you get into the OOBE realm and start to feel
- comfortable there, you will be in a position to be a "wild
- one" too. Basically, you can do anything you want in the OOBE
- realm and get away with it. As a more benign example, I will
- often walk into houses while I am projecting and explore freely,
- whether I am invited in or not. This is something I absolutely
- would never do here on the physical plane. Once, for example,
- I walked into a house and there was a family there. I went
- into the kitchen and started exploring their refrigerator.
- I found a gallon of milk and drank it (straight out of the jug!)
- to see if it had a taste (incidently it tasted and felt like
- real milk). Meanwhile, they were staring at me wondering what
- I was doing in their house, though they had the typical nonlucidity
- that people have over there. I made small talk with them and
- then flew out through the door and left. Again, this is
- something I would not do here on the physical plane.
- If you look back even at the entries I've listed in these
- notes you'll see many examples of my being a "wild one": when I
- ripped down the wall of the house so I could go out into the rain;
- when I ate that Butler's ("Ducheim's") pudding; when I "flattened"
- the mean guy I met in the rehab center. All these are examples
- of me letting go of the inhibitions I would normally have here in
- physical life and doing exactly what I felt like doing with
- absolutely no concern for the consequences of my actions.
- It's not even that I had no concern for the consequences
- of my actions - there were no consequences! The people you
- meet during an OOBE are in *usually* no position to challenge your
- behavior. You will encounter exceptions to this so don't get
- complacent.
- So, all I want to do is point out this facet of the
- OOBE/projection experience. It is completely up to your
- moral makeup as to how you will behave during an OOBE.
- I'll leave it to those of you with deviant imaginations to come
- up with other things you could get away with during a projection
- that you could never dream of doing here.
- Now, maybe what I'm saying here sounds like a complete
- contradiction to what I said at the begining of these notes
- about the need to have morals if you want to be a successful
- astral projector. Now, hear me good: I am NOT saying to
- be mean, I am NOT saying to hurt anything or anybody, and I
- am NOT saying to be evil during your projections. It will
- be on your conscience if you decide to act this way while
- out-of-body. What I am saying though is HAVE A SENSE OF
- HUMOR. Having morals does not mean you have to be dead
- serious all the time. The OOBE realm provides ample opportunity
- to act in ways that you simply cannot act here, and provides
- a means to lift your inhibitions and experience a type of
- freedom of action that is simply impossible in this physical
- world. I recommend you explore this freedom.
-
-
-
- 9. Waking Up - Returning Back To The Physical Realm
-
- The final part of any OOBE consists of your return to this
- physical world. I would now like to comment on the process of
- waking up from an OOBE. Though I've been using the expression
- throughout these notes, it's kind of a misnomer to say "waking
- up from an OOBE" because you have been *awake* (i.e. lucid) all
- along! Actually, what happens is you come out of your trance.
- Let me first describe the nature of the transition from the OOBE
- back here to the physical, and then I will summarize the suggestions
- I have presented throughout the notes that pertain to the transition
- from the OOBE back here to the physical.
- There are a two ways that the "waking up" process may occur:
-
- 1. It is abrupt.
- 2. You have a "false awakening".
-
- In actual fact, when your OOBE is finnished, you will abruptly
- wake up back here on the physical plane. Coming out of an OOBE is
- NOT like waking up from sleep. Usually when we wake up from sleep
- we pass through a hypnopomic period (recall that hypnopompic means
- hypnogogia during waking up), or at least we lie in bed feeling
- dreamy and comfortable and many times do not want to get out of
- bed right away. Coming out of a projection is much different
- from this. The transition is completely abrupt and you will find
- yourself wide awake laying on your bed. As I said, you may even
- feel "light and tingly" when you return here to the physical, or
- in rare cases you may feel tired and unrested. And to repeat,
- in very rare cases you may actually feel perhaps a headache.
- And that's it; your OOBE will be over. It's now time to gather
- up your memories of your OOBE and record it in your journal.
- However, there are certain complications that can arise
- which I need to comment on. What can happen many times is that
- you will think you are awake back here on the physical, but in
- fact you are NOT. This is called a "false awakening" by Oliver
- Fox an author on astral projection. Basically, you will come out of
- the OOBE and think you are physical again, but you will actually
- still be projecting! A number of times I have woken up from an
- OOBE, laid gathering my memories and promptly gotten up and started
- recording my experience in my journal only to discover I was not
- really awake here in the physical!
- When you have a false awakening, there are basically two
- ways you will respond to it. Either you will realize that
- you are still projecting or you will not. If you do not realize
- you had a false awakening, it will become like a normal dream
- and you may go off and do other things, characteristic of your
- dream behavior, only to find yourself waking up *for real* here
- in the physical sometime later.
- A number of things may serve as clues to help you realize
- you have had a false awakening. First, you may be in a completely
- unfamiliar environment. That is, you may "wake up" in some
- unfamiliar room but be under the impression you have ended your OOBE
- and have returned to the physical. If you still have any lucidity,
- you will quickly recognize the fact that you are in an unfamiliar
- place, and that should trigger in you the realization that you
- had a false awakening.
- It may be that you have a false awakening, but you are
- indeed in your bedroom or wherever you had projected from. In
- this case, you may see subtle clues that will retrigger your
- lucidity, and help you realize you had a false awakening. One
- thing that would happen to me often, and there are examples
- of this in a couple of the journal entries I presented is
- that I would look at my clock-radio to see what time it was
- upon returning from my OOBE. However, when I would look at
- the clock, I could literally see the *inside* of the clock with
- its gears and such moving around. This was usually enough to
- clue me in on the fact that I didn't really wake up but was
- still projecting.
- So, once you realize that you had a false awakening, you
- will realize you are still be projecting and you can continue
- to explore the OOBE realm.
- Sometimes, during an OOBE, you may *want* to wake yourself
- up. For example, you may encounter some threatening monster or
- such and decide that you'd rather be awake. So, the question is:
- how do you wake yourself up while in the midst of an OOBE? Well,
- if you do not spontaneously wake up due to the excitement (i.e.
- lose your lockmold), then what you can do is the following:
- shake yourself violently. Just shake yourself awake. This is
- what I describe in my Darkside episode presented earlier. In
- this experience I was terrified. So I jumped back into my body
- and started shaking myself and, even though in this case I had
- some difficulty, I eventually woke myself back up here to the
- physical world.
- Presuming you are really now awake here in the physical
- world (i.e. no false awakenings) and just returned from an OOBE,
- here are the things you want to do:
-
- 1. First thing is to simply lay there and gather
- your memories of your OOBE. Do not move or think
- about anything else until you have recalled as
- much as you can about your OOBE.
-
- 2. Next, immediatly record your OOBE in your journal.
- Again, this can be simply jotting down a quick
- outline, or writing a 10 page narrative. I do,
- however, suggest you write down everything you
- can remember, no matter how long it is or how
- long it takes you. It is too easy to forget
- your experiences or distort your memeory of them
- as time goes on, and the only way you can guarantee
- an accurate account of your OOBE is to record it
- while it is still fresh in your mind. Also, put
- the date and time of your OOBE in your journal.
-
-
-
-
- 10. Astrology and OOBEs
-
- I said earlier that I would discuss using astrology to
- determine if one has a propensity towards having OOBEs. Now,
- this will be a somewhat specialized discussion as it will
- mainly be of interest to astrologers. So basically, if
- you know nothing about astrology, you can skip this section.
- The information presented in this section has nothing *practical*
- to do with having OOBEs. I am presenting these ideas here mainly
- because I have a rudimentary ability to read birth-charts, and
- I have tried to determine what factors in my chart were related
- to the fact that I can astral project. And also, I have never
- seen this topic discussed in any astrology book I have read, so
- as far as I know, the following is a completely new application
- of astrology (if anyone out there knows better, please let me know!).
- So, the question to astrologers is: are there factors in a
- birthchart that will help indicate if the subject has a propensity
- towards having OOBEs? As any astrologer knows, one can deduce a
- pretty accurate profile of an indivdual's personality if one
- can construct and successfully interpret that individual's birthchart.
- What I will do here is give the information necessary to construct
- my birthchart, and describe the factors in my chart that seem
- to be relevant to my ability to astral project. Afterwards, I
- will distill out what may be the major personality characteristics
- which facilitate having OOBEs. Then, I would predict that people
- having a preponderance of such factors in their chart will have
- a greater propensity towards having OOBEs than people who do not have
- such factors predominating in their chart.
- Before I begin, so you astrologers out there know where I am
- coming from, my entire approach to astrology stems exclusively
- from Dane Rudhyar's Humanistic Astrology. This is the only approach
- towards, and philosophy of, astrology that I know and practice. So,
- the basis for my own interpretation of my birthchart derives
- from a Humanistic Astrology approach. This said, here is my
- birth data to construct my natal birthchart:
-
- Date: November 9, 1965
- Time: 5:18 PM EST
- Latitute: 42 N 20.0 (Detroit, MI)
- Longitude: 83 W 3.0
- House System: Campanus
-
- With this data, you can construct my natal birthchart and see
- the properties I will now list. The following list of factors
- from my birthchart are those that I feel are relevant towards
- my ability to astral project relatively easily:
-
- 1. 50:50 balance of the planets above and below the Horizon, meaning
- a perfect balance of subjective and objective. Or the ability to
- objectify subjective realities and subjectify objective realities.
- To make one's inner dream life real like the waking experience, to
- make ones real outer objective experience into a dream.
-
- 2. Sun below Horizon suggesting an emphasis on inner subjective
- orientation and experience, i.e. more introverted than extroverted.
-
- 3, Retrograde Jupiter in second house, which is also below the
- Horizon, suggesting wealth and abundance of my inner psychological
- life.
-
- 4. Neptune conjunct to natal Sun, suggesting an easy channeling
- between my life essence and occult energies, energies possessing
- the quality of inclusiveness. Also, the glamour and illusion
- of Neptune is associated with the astral plane.
-
- 5. Also my retrograde Saturn, along with factors 3 and 4, suggests
- an essentially flimsy ego, one not very well grounded in objective
- reality. Such a situation would enhance the potential for OOBE.
- i.e. a person who lives more in their imagination than in the
- objective, outer world.
-
- 6. Saturn opposition Pluto, suggesting an identification (Saturn)
- with death processes, i.e. the ability to explore the realms
- of the (so-called) dead (Hades, of which Pluto is the ruler).
-
- 7. The gestalt pattern of 2 in my chart, the so-called "Dumbell
- pattern", which is related to the aspect of opposition,
- suggesting the ability to be aware of, and thus conceptualize.
- And also the balancing of opposites such as inner and outer
- realms, subjective and objective realities, ect.
-
- 8. Moon in first house, again suggesting an essentially transient
- and ephemeral ego.
-
- 9. And of course, the fact that my natal sun is in Scorpio
- suggesting an interest in things occult.
-
- Now, what can we distill out of this chart analysis as the
- key features of a personality prone to the OOBE? Here are the
- factors that I see:
-
- 1. The ability to balance opposites.
- 2. More introspective than extroverted, i.e.
- factors that point to a rich inner life.
- 3. Things that indicate a flimsy ego.
- 4. A natural propensity towards occultism and learning.
- 5. A propensity towards enhanced awareness or lucidity
- of one's environment.
-
- It seems apparent to me that an indivdual who displays these
- types of characteristics in their chart will have a greater
- propensity for having OOBEs than a person who does not. Of course,
- such a profile may apply to mediums as well (i.e. a person who
- can be taken over by other consciousnesses easily), and to sensitive
- people prone to psychosis. I think the main determinant here is not
- any particular individual element (which traditional astrologers
- tend to take too far) but is to be found in the overall *gestalt*
- of the chart. Of course, Humanistic Astrology insists upon
- interpreting individual chart elements solely in terms of the gestalt
- pattern of the chart, and that is exactly what I am saying here.
- The gestalt of the chart should indicate balance and awareness
- (i.e. opposition type aspects) and lean more towards the subjective
- than the objective.
- Now of course, the type of personality analysis I am suggesting
- here need not be confined soley to astrological analysis. We are
- actually talking psychology and personality analysis here.
- So, in general, given enough information, one should be able to
- develop a general profile of the "ideal" personality type that is
- especially suited for astral projecting based on the above
- characteristics. The advantage of astrology over traditional
- psychological analysis however, is the strength of astrology
- to construct a unique and objective personality profile based
- upon the natal birthchart. In a very real sense, astrology
- provides a systematic, and highly effective means for conceptualizing
- the elements of human personality, and maybe one day psychologists
- will discover this! And again, for those of you reading this,
- all my statements are based EXCLUSIVELY on Dane Rudhyar's
- ideas about what astrology is and what it can be used for,
- a type of astrology called Humanistic Astrology.
-
-
-
- 11. Wrapping it all up
-
- We are now almost done with these notes. What I want to do here
- is very briefly summarize the overall process of the OOBE experience,
- and then make some comments about the significance of having OOBEs
- and how OOBEs fit into the greater scheme of life.
-
- A. Review.
-
- We have discussed:
-
- 1. The theory behind OOBEs/astral projections/lucid dreams.
- The take home message to our discussion of theory is that
- these 3 terms all refer to the same experience. The
- difference in these 3 terms is in the *world-views* that
- produced each term. Debating about these terms in not
- important. What is important is LEARNING HOW TO HAVE
- OOBEs FOR YOURSELF.
-
- 2. We discussed two major methods for inducing OOBEs:
- becoming lucid in a dream, and putting yourself into
- a trance. The message here is that, if you practice
- either of these techniques, you are almost assuredly
- guaranteed to successfully project.
-
- 3. We discussed the major facets of the OOBE: the actual
- act of leaving your body, the things you can do during
- a projection (fly, etc.), and the regions you will
- encounter in the OOBE realm.
-
- 4. Finally, I briefly discussed "getting into trouble"
- and the "waking up" process.
-
- In general, these discussions have meant to provide a
- PRACTICAL introduction to astral projection/OOBEs/lucid dreaming.
- Of course, this material was completely slanted and based upon my
- own experiences out-of-body and my particular interpretation of occult
- teachings. Almost everything I say in these notes may or may not
- apply to you. All you can do is practice the suggestions
- I put forth and see what happens. It would be nice if OOBEs were
- a science. However they are not, and this fact we have to for now
- accept. It will be very helpful to you to read as much as you can
- about OOBEs/astral projections/lucid dreams. Please look over
- the bibliography and go and find the books I have listed there
- that interest you.
-
-
-
- B. OOBEs: Subjective Or Objective?
-
- So, as we wrap up here, is there any way we can summarize
- just exactly *what* the OOBE experience is? Is it truly an
- exploration into unseen worlds and planes? Or is it merely
- a complex hallucination occurring in your own brain, merely
- a subjective fantasy world in which your subconscious mind
- exteriorizes seemingly outside of you?
- Presently, no one can answer these questions with any certainty.
- The methods of modern science have pretty much failed in the quest
- to discover the nature and essence of the OOBE. Parapsychologists
- and psychologists have produced interesting insights into various
- facets of the OOBE, but by no means have defined it or even come
- close to understanding the act or its implications. Occultists
- also have very interesting and useful things to say about the nature
- of the OOBE/astral projection experience. I strongly recommend
- that you read the occult literature I have in the bibliography.
- There are many useful and PRACTICAL hints scattered throughout the
- occult literature. I repeat, the best you can do is
- be open-minded to all the various ideas put forth about the
- nature of the OOBE/astral projection/lucid dream experience.
- As I said at the start, the study of OOBEs does not occur in a
- vacuum. The fact of OOBEs relates to many other studies including
- occultism, psychology, parapsychology, religion, physiology, history
- and a large number of other topics.
- However, and I will say this for the last time, you can debate
- about definitions of the OOBE/astral projection/lucid dream
- experience till you are blue in the face. But all such talk is
- only so much hot air. It's easy to speculate and theorize. It's
- not as easy to go and learn how to project for yourself. The only
- way you can get any sure answers at all about the nature of the
- OOBE/astral projection/lucid dream experience is to LEARN TO DO
- IT FOR YOURSELF. That's the bottom line: LEARN TO DO IT FOR
- YOURSELF. And, if you choose this path, be eclectic, be open
- minded, and most of all, in light of everything you learn along
- the way, BE PRACTICAL.
-
-
-
- C. Maya and Buddhi
-
- We have now come to the end of these notes. To conclude my
- lessons on how to achieve an OOBE/astral projection/lucid dream,
- I will present the "big picture" presently in my mind by which I
- understand what an OOBE is and how it fits into my life. You can
- take my philosophy or leave it as you wish. However, these ideas
- are the fruition of a tremendous amount of study, reflection, more
- study, numerous experiences with altered states of consciousness,
- numerous qualities of experience here in my physical life, and more
- study and more reflection. There is a cycle: learn, do,
- reflect, learn some more, do some more, reflect some more. This
- cycle goes on and on for our whole lives.
- Presently, one of my major interests centers on understanding
- ancient Hindu ideas. I have been led to study Hinduism because,
- as far as I can tell, the Hindus probably had the most complete
- understanding of altered states of consciousness of any other
- culture I know of, even our own. In our culture today, we are
- completely preoccupied by physical consciousness, by the experience
- of our consciousness here in the physical world. As I already
- said, we do not even understand the nature of the fact that we dream.
- And it seems that everything we attempt to understand today has
- to be fit into physical terms or we consider it irrelevant,
- fantasy, mythology, or meaningless.
- The ancient Hindus, on the other hand, had developed an
- elaborate science of human psychology while our ancestors
- were still barbarians in the forests of Europe. This
- science they called "yoga", and behind this science is an
- elaborate system of philosophy that has been captured in the
- Vedas, Upanishads, Tantras and in other ancient Hindu holy
- writings.
- The Hindus were *introspective* and the things they discovered
- through the introspective science of yoga are completely amazing.
- Millenia ago, the Hindus mapped out the inner planes, and mapped
- out the methods and techniques needed to access these inner planes.
- The ultimate achievment of Hindu civilization, was, however, to create
- methods by which we humans could experience a direct relationship
- with the SOURCE of all creation. Hindus called this "becoming
- enlightened", and they call this SOURCE "Brahman". Call it God,
- call it Brahman, call it whatever you want. It doesn't matter what
- name you give it, because the source of all existence is ALL names,
- and ALL things. And the Hindus learned how to directly experience
- this source through the methods of yoga.
- The Hindu outlook is a viewpoint far removed from our every
- day life here at the cusp of the twenty-first century. We of the
- so-called "modern" world are like naive, rambunctious teenagers
- compared to the mature, inclusive outlook of the Hindus. We are
- marvelled by the physical world, and marvelled by the mind we
- possess that allows us to mold and shape the physical world in
- terms of our desires and ideas - even though we haven't the
- slightest idea what we are doing. The Hindus, though, understood
- what was going on. They understood the nature of Humankind,
- and all the invisible layers that appear to separate humans from
- the SOURCE.
- These are the ideas I presently use to understand what OOBEs
- are and how they fit into the greater scope of our lives as
- conscious beings in the cosmos, and these ideas I will
- express to end this presentation.
- There are two ideas from Hindu thought that we do not
- possess in our culture or in our language. These ideas are
- "maya" and "buddhi". Understanding these two ideas *as Hindus
- understand these ideas* gives us an infinitely powerful framework
- to make sense not only of the OOBE, but of our entire life and
- experience.
- I was surprised to read in a book about Hindu culture that the
- word "buddhi" translates as "to reflect" or "reflection". In our
- culture the word "buddhi" comes to us in the concept of the buddhic
- plane, or the idea of a buddha, or in the idea of bodhistava.
- All of these words have tremendous *spiritual* connotations, but it
- is a type of spirituality that is unknown to us in the
- present day of modern techno-mass production culture. To us,
- spirituality is a flimsy term or it is an emotion-laden term.
- We rarely ever think of spiritual things as being intellectual,
- or even more rarely, as being something *greater* than our intellect.
- In our modern world, we worship our intellect, which, in occult
- terms means that the highest level we tend to operate on is the
- mental plane. We understand the world through ideas, symbols,
- names, theories and definitions and we are content with this
- (if not downright smug about it). In effect, the "God" of our
- present-day culture is the intellect and its creations. The
- reality is though, in our ignorance, we simply do not know what
- we are missing. Only a few of the more daring thinkers of our
- age would have suggested that there is something greater than the
- human mind, and have the courage to follow such an insight through
- to its logical conclusion (see for example, the book by Dane
- Rudhyar in the bibliography).
- Buddhi is indeed that essence of spirituality which is GREATER
- THAN THE HUMAN MIND. But what is buddhi? Why does buddhi mean
- "to reflect"? To put it into terms that are meaningful to us
- as a people preoccupied by the mind, BUDDI IS THAT ASPECT
- OF THE SOURCE OF ALL CREATION WHICH CAN OPERATE IN HUMAN EXPERIENCE.
- Buddi is the divine in the mundane, the spirituality of the secular.
- Buddi is GOD as God manifests in our everyday lives and in human
- history. Dane Rudhyar put it something like this: as a crystal
- is a perfect structure which can then reflect the light of the sun
- and display the light of the sun in a myriad of multicolored
- facets, likewise is the human mind like a crystal that can,
- when the mind is made clean and perfect, reflect the light of
- the divine into a myriad of multi-colored facets, and these facets
- are the sum total of human experience. In other words, buddhi
- is when our mind is clean and pure and reflects in the light of
- the divine essence that underlies all of creation.
- The second Hindu term of relevance here is the idea of
- "maya". Maya is translated in a number of ways in our culture,
- with each translation capturing a part of the meaning of the word
- maya. Maya is: illusion, magic, the power of life, the Great
- Mother, transience and change, impermanance, time. The basic idea
- behind the Hindu concept of maya is an idea very far removed
- from our everyday approach to life here in the late twentieth
- century. For the idea of maya means that all that we can
- perceive, all that we think, all that we experience, is but
- ephemeral and transient. All of phenomenal reality, all of the
- manifested universe - both physical AND nonphysical - are
- but a momentary shadow of the Divine Source. The closest idea
- we have to maya in our collective consciousness is Plato's
- allegory of the cave, in which men chained to the back of a cave wall
- watch the shadows from the outside world dance before them on the
- cave wall. All these chained men can see are the shadows and
- have no idea of the world outside that is the source of these
- shadows. This, according to Plato, is how the ordinary mind
- experiences reality: they see only the *effects* and never once
- suspect the Divine Cause beneath the effects of life as we
- perceive and experience it.
- So, in terms of stressing the idea of illusion, Plato's
- allegory is similar to the Hindu concept of maya. However, the
- implication of Plato's allegory is that being in such a state
- of ignorance of Divine Causes is bad in some sense. Why else
- would he present the idea of men chained in the darkness? This
- is not one's image of good. However, the Hindu idea of maya
- does not have such emotional overtones. It has, as a matter of fact,
- quite the opposite implications. For the illusion of reality as we
- know and experience it is the joyous expression of the Divine
- becoming enmeshed in the Divine Tragi-Comedy of Creation. Maya is
- not a sorrowful reality, but a Cosmic Dance of celebration by the
- Gods.
- Be this as it may, we today do not accept the possibility that
- the entire phenomenal world that we perceive with our senses
- and the worlds we perceive in dreams and OOBEs could be all
- of Divine Illusion. Today we take things very literally and
- very seriously. We believe very strongly that the word we
- perceive and experience is *real*. And this is both our strength
- as a culture and our folly.
- However, as I personally have passed through the cycle of
- learning, action, reflection, more learning, more action, more reflection,
- I have come to appreciate the relevance of the concepts of buddi
- and maya as very PRACTICAL principles for dealing with life.
- What we call "reality" is in actuality a multi-layered, multi-
- dimensional, ever changing, ever transcient "thing". We ARE maya;
- our life and experience and all we take to be so real is maya.
- In this incredible Divine Play of maya we have the option of
- reflecting the Divine, of allowing buddhi to become a progressively
- greater part of our being. We have the choice: we can get
- ever deeper enmeshed in the illusion of experience, or we can
- turn inwards to the center of our being and discover buddhi.
- Once we discover buddhi, we then view maya in a new light;
- we know that ALL is but the joyous play of the Divine.
- The fact of the matter is, from such a point of view,
- the OOBE is us exploring deeper levels of the maya, seeing the
- shadows cast by other shadows on the cave wall. Is this "bad"?
- No it is not. It is simply what it is. The realm of the OOBE is
- a realm one step closer to the Divine Source of Creation than is the
- physical, but it is an even more illusory realm than this physical
- world. In both the physical and OOBE worlds, our ideas and
- desires shape the reality around us, only this process is
- greatly enhanced, greatly quickened in the OOBE realm. So,
- we may be one step closer to the Divine, but we are potentially
- veiled even more from the Divine while in the OOBE realm than
- here in the physical realm, veiled from the Divine by illusions
- we create in the OOBE realm from our desires and ideas, be these
- subconscious or not. But to say the astral is "closer" to the Divine
- or not is all only apparent, for the Divine is equally present
- in ALL THINGS, physical or otherwise, and discovering the
- Divine in our life is always only a heartbeat away.
- So, to conclude these lessons in astral projection, I basically
- believe at present that, yes, the nonphysical realms exist, that
- yes, there is something in us that transcends our physical body,
- and yes, you can visit these realms easily if you learn the right
- things. But, though the implications of these facts are astounding
- from within the materialistic and secular mind-set of our present
- culture, from the point of view of the ancient Hindus, this is all
- no big deal. You can be as ignorant of the Divine in the OOBE realms
- as you are here. In the end, all that matters is to open yourself up
- to buddhi. By opening up to buddhi, you will find the maya to be an
- infinitely enjoyable place, whether in this world or any other.
-
- I would like to end this presentation with the following
- quote from Dane Rudhyar, a man who truly understood buddhi.
-
-
-
- "If we do not accept the existence of spirit as
- a transpersonal, transcultural, and metabiological
- power, the only other possible way of interpreting
- with some degree of consistency the obvious facts
- of personal and collective human experience is to
- adopt a materialistic approach, whether as
- developed by Marx or by other materialists; but
- such an interpretation excludes many of the most
- significant experiences of man. It leads to a most
- depressing world-view, essentially devoid of meaning
- and purpose. On the other hand, if the existence of
- spirit as a creative and transformative power is
- accepted, and its action in and through mind is clearly
- understood and adequately formulated, the material
- facts find their place within an all-inclusive picture
- of cosmic activity which takes nothing from them, but
- instead endows then with a transphysical and
- metabiological significance stimulating human beings
- to more conscious, sustained, and eventually more
- radiant endeavors."
-
- -Dane Rudyar. "Culture, Crisis and Creativity", (page 106).
-
-
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 14
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- AP_15.TXT
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- FILE 15 - CompuServe Astral Projection Class by Don DeGracia, 1994
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
- Astral Projection Class on CompuServe
-
- by Don DeGracia: 72662,1335
-
- Copyright 1994
- None of this material
- may be reproduced without
- explicit permission from
- the author.
-
-
- ANNOTATED BIBLIOGRAPHY
- Recommended Reading List
-
-
- There are basically 3 different types of books in this list.
-
- 1. Books about HOW TO astral project, which give techniques.
-
- 2. Books about people's experiences in the OOBE realm.
- These are written in the first person and are
- autobiographical.
-
- 3. Books not specifically about astral projection but
- that provide background information on topics
- related to astral projection.
-
- For each book on this list I will specify which category(ies)
- it falls under, and then say a few words about the book. The list is
- simply in alphabetical order according to the author's name. By no
- means is this a complete list. It is only meant to give you a
- starting exposure to literature relevant to astral projection/OOBEs/
- lucid dreaming. The books listed here are, however, those I
- have found to be particularly useful.
-
-
- ********************
-
-
- Besant, A. A Study In Consciousness, Madras: Theosophical
- Publishing House, 8th edition, 1980.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. This
- book is an excellent and profound introduction to
- theosophical occultism.
-
- Besant, A., and Leadbeater, C.W. Occult Chemistry.
- London: Theosophical Publishing House, 2nd edition, 1919.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. This book
- describes Besant and Leadbeater's clairvoyant
- investigations into the structure of the atom. The
- reason this book is relevant is because Besant
- and Leadbeater use the little known psychic ability
- anima (called also "magnifying clairvoyance" or "micro-
- psi) which I discussed under the section of the notes
- titled "Surreal Spaces". As you can excersise the
- ability of anima during your projections, this book
- gives you some idea of what is possible to see
- using this psychic ability.
-
- Besant, A. and Leadbeater, C.W. Thought-Forms.
- Wheaton, IL: Quest, 5th edition, 1986.
- (Originally published in 1901).
-
- This book is not about astral projection. Again,
- this book provides important background information
- relevant to the OOBE. This is a classic book, the first
- ever to describe thought-forms. You will encounter
- thought-forms when out-of-body and this book will
- give you a good understanding of the nature of thought-forms,
- what they are and how they behave.
-
- Fox, Oliver. Astral Projection A Record of Out-of-the Body Experiences.
- Citadel Press, Secaucus, N.J., 1975.
-
- This is one of the classic first person accounts of
- the OOBE. Oliver Fox was highly influenced by
- theosophical ideas, so his accounts generally fall
- under the occult world-view. There are many useful
- tips in this book as well. For example, this is
- the book that first described "False Awakenings".
-
- Hall, Manly P. Unseen Forces. Los Angeles, CA. Philosophical
- Research Society, Inc. 1978.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. Again, this
- book provides excellent background material about the
- forces and inhabitants of the inner planes. It is
- written from the occult perspective. Most important
- this book discusses the "Dweller on the Threshold".
- I highly recommend any of the books by Manly Hall.
- He is a highly infomative and intellignet speaker.
- His material contains a vast wealth of useful
- information.
-
- Leadbeater, C.W. Man Visible And Invisible.
- Wheaton, IL: Quest, 3rd Quest printing, abridged, 1980.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. This book
- is about occult anatomy. Here, the various bodies
- (astral, mental and buddhic) are described in detail.
- Leadbeater claimed to be able to percieve these bodies
- using clairvoyance. Again, this is important
- background information. I also strongly recommend
- reading any and all Leadbeater books you can get
- your hands on. Of all the authors I have read,
- Leadbeater has been by far the most useful for
- understanding the nature of the OOBE. Many
- things I have directly experienced during my OOBEs
- are described in Leadbeater's books and Leadbeater
- present many useful ideas I never seen published
- anywhere else.
-
- Leadbeater, C.W. The Astral Plane. Madras: Vasanta Press,
- twelfth reprint, 1984.
-
- This is *the* classic book on the astral plane.
- Written in 1895, it is still relevant in many
- respects today. Of course, just as the physical
- world and society changes, so too do the astral
- realms transform. Nonetheless, this book will
- introduce you to many of the important principles
- operating on the astral plane.
-
- Leadbeater, C.W. Dreams. Adyar, Madras India: Theosophical
- Publishing House, 12th reprint, 1984.
-
- Here we have the theosophical conception of
- dreams. This is a very PRATICAL book for the
- astral projector. This book will help you
- understand the nature of your projections and how
- they relate to your dreams better than any other
- book available. This is a MUST read for anybody
- learning astral projection/OOBEs/lucid dreaming.
-
- Leadbeater, C.W. The Chakras. Wheaton, IL: Theosophical
- Publishing House, 4th Quest edition, 1985.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. Again,
- this is another classic book in the field of occultism,
- and explains the chakras; how they function and what they
- do. Again, this is important background information
- and will help you better understand the nature of
- things you percieve while in the out-of-body state.
-
- Leadbeater, C.W. Clairvoyance. Wheaton: TPH, 1986, 15th reprint.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. This book is
- another important source of background information. Here
- Leadbeater defines the various types of clairvoyance.
- This book is also a MUST read because you will find yourself
- using the different types of clairvoyance Leadbeater
- defines while you are out-of-body. Agin, this book will
- help you make sense of perceptions you will have while
- out-of-body that you could not understand otherwise.
-
- Mavromatis, A. Hypnogogia. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1987.
-
- This book is about hypnogogic imagery. This book
- presents numerous reports of hypnogogic imagery and
- also presents a number of theories to explain
- hypnogogia. It is an academic book, but it is highly
- informative. My favorite aspect of this book is that
- it is the only academic type book about altered states
- of consciousness I have ever read that suggests that
- the theories of Besant and Leadbeater may be the most
- suitable theories for explaining altered states of
- consciousness.
-
- Monroe, R. Journeys Out Of The Body. New York: Doubleday, 1971.
-
- This book too is a classic in the astral projection
- literature. Here, Robert Monroe presents his
- personal experiences out-of-body. This is a first person,
- autobiographical book, but it also has some technique
- described in it. The important thing about Monroe's books
- are that they are NOT based on occult ideas, nor strickly
- on parapsychological ideas, nor on psychology ideas.
- Monroe has his own personal style of understanding his
- OOBEs. Nonetheless, Monroe clearly describes and supports
- many of the claims of occultists.
-
- Monroe, R. Far Journeys. New York: Doubleday, 1985.
-
- This is Robert Monroe's second book. In my opinion,
- this book is perhaps the most "modern" of any book
- about OOBEs. In Far Journeys, Monroe paints a picture
- of the OOBE realms that is absolutely stunning. This
- book is a MUST read book. Again, what is very clear is that
- Monore is desribing the planes that occultists have
- described. However, Monroe's approach is different in that,
- unlike occult ideas, Monroe's attitude is that the reality
- of the planes is open to everybody. Traditional occultism
- tends to reserve traveling in the planes for special initiates,
- Masters and other supposedly "advanced" humans. Monroe
- severly challenges this view by showing that anybody
- can travel in the planes (or "rings" as Monroe calls them).
- This change in attitude is very important, and it is an attitude
- that I share with Monroe. Also in this book, Monroe
- describes the activity and researches of the Monroe
- Institute in Faber Virginia, a research organization
- established by Monroe for studying the OOBE. As I said
- in the notes, the Monroe institute furnishes tapes
- and programs for learning how to have OOBEs.
-
- Monroe, R. Ultimate Journey. New York, Doubleday, 1994.
-
- This is Robert Monroe's third book about OOBEs and is
- hot off the press as I sit here and write these words.
- In this third book, Monroe describes how he has discovered
- his past lives, and also gets a faint glimmer of something
- mystics have described for centuries, which is the fact
- that our psyches touch God. Actually, I am dissapointed
- with this book. It is not as useful a book as is Far Journeys.
- You would think that, after 30 years of having OOBEs,
- Monroe would have somewhere come across the fact that what
- he has experienced in the out-of-body state is very similar
- to what others have described. However, he comes across
- in this book as if he is the only one in humanity that has
- ever experienced the realities he describes. This is just
- not a good attitude to have in the OOBE buisness. Also
- dissapointing in this book is that Monroe gets kind of
- "preachy" (as one New Age forum member put it), as if
- his particular viewpoint on the universe is the ONLY
- viewpoint. Again, this kind of closed minded approach
- is not good in the OOBE buisness.
-
- OOBEFAQ.ZIP - OOBE FAQ file by Jouni Smed, 1994.
-
- This is NOT a book! OOBEFAQ.ZIP is a compressed file
- which contains the FAQ (Frequently Asked Questions) file
- for the Internet newsgroup alt.out-of-body. This file
- is available in the Compuserve New Age forum Library.
- If you are not on Compuserve, you can send e-mail to the
- Internet address jounsmes@utu.fi and request information
- for obtaining this file. This FAQ file is an excellent
- source of information on the OOBE. It includes techniques
- for inducing OOBEs, information about numerous surveys and
- studies of the OOBE and much other useful information.
- It also has a large reference section which can lead you to
- many other sources of information about OOBEs. This FAQ
- file is written mainly from a parapsychology perspective
- and quite obviously attempts to discredit occult views
- of the OOBE. Nonetheless, the author at least presents
- occult views side by side with nonoccult views, which is
- much more than most parapsychology presentations do. I
- highly recommend this file for reading. Though it is
- slanted with a bias I do not share, it is a veritable
- storehouse of information. Reading this file will
- expose you to the variety of ideas that exist regarding
- the nature of the OOBE. In effect, this file is a more
- advanced approach to the theory behind OOBEs than I
- have attempted to present in these notes.
-
- Ophiel. The Art And Practice Of Astral Projection.
- York Beach, Maine: Samuel Wiser, Inc., 1982.
-
- This is a HOW TO astral projection book and is another
- classic in the field. Ophiel outlines specific methods
- for achieving OOBEs and also describes many helpful
- hints. This is one in a series of "The Art and Practice
- of..." books by Ophiel. Generally, all of Ophiel's
- books are practical introductions to traditional occultism,
- and are fun reading too. Unlike most occultists, Ophiel
- does not have a "holier than thou" attitude and he also
- presents the view that OOBEs and other occult gifts are
- meant for everyone, not just Masters. This book is
- highly recommended.
-
-
- Powel, A.E. The Etheric Double. Wheaton IL. Quest Books (TPH), 1969.
- Powel, A.E. The Astral Body. Wheaton IL. Quest Books (TPH), 1972.
- Powel, A.E. The Mental Body. Wheaton IL. Quest Books (TPH), 1972.
- Powel, A.E. The Buddhic Body. Wheaton IL. Quest Books (TPH), 1972.
-
- A.E. Powel undertook the extrordinary task of compiling
- the writings of Annie Besant, C.W. Leadbeater and
- H.P. Blavatsky on the topics of the etheric, astral
- mental and buddhic bodies. Each of the four books
- listed above is a complete compilation of these three
- authors thoughts on each of the bodies. These four
- volumes compiled by Powel provide a very compact and
- convinient source of information about occult anatomy
- as defined by Besant, Leadbeater and Blavatsky.
- These volumes make a nice addition to any library.
-
- Rogo, D.S. Leaving The Body. New York: Prentice Hall, 1986.
-
- This is a HOW TO book on astral projection and is
- a MUST read book. If there is one book in this list
- that you should read, it is this one. Rogo has done
- us all an increadible service in this book by collecting
- all of the known methods of achieving OOBEs in one book.
- He covers Monroe's methods, Ophiel's methods, Fox's methods,
- the methods of Yram, and others as well. For the beginner
- in astral projection/OOBEs/Lucid dreaming, this is the
- book you want. My only reservation about this book is
- that Rogo's ideas about the nature of the OOBE are not
- very sophisticated. Rogo was a parapsychologist who
- came eventually to realize that occult ideas are more
- uesful than not. But he was not informed enough about
- occult theory to really give a coherent picture of the
- OOBE. Nonetheless, this is *the* most useful HOW TO book
- on astral projection available today.
-
-
- Roberts, Jane. The Nature Of The Psyche. New York: Prentice Hall, 1979.
-
- This is not a book about astral projection.
- however, the Seth books are MUST READ books. The
- ideas that Seth presents go one step beyond traditional
- occultism to what we can call "modern occultism". In
- this book, Seth discusses the nature of human psychology.
- The ideas he presents in this book are highly relevant
- to the idea that what we percieve in dreams and OOBEs
- are, in some sense, symbolic expressions of our
- "higher self" (or whatever term you prefer here).
- Seth helps us realize the greater contexts in which our
- physical, dream and OOBE experience fit. This book
- is especially useful for understanding the differences
- and the overlap between waking and dreaming.
-
- Roberts, Jane. Dreams, "Evolution", And Value Fulfillment, A Seth
- Book. New York: Prentice Hall, 1986.
-
- Another Seth book. Actually, this is two books:
- volumes I and II. Here, Seth presents a concept of
- what dreams are that is completely unique. Nowhere else
- can you find concepts of the nature of dreams that are
- described in this book. I will not even pretend here
- to capture Seth's ideas. All I can say is I highly
- recommend this book.
-
-
- Roberts, Jane. Seth - Dreams And Projections Of Consciousness.
- New York: Bantam, 1989.
-
- This Seth book goes into the nature of OOBEs and their
- relationship to dreams and our waking experience. Again,
- this Seth book helps us understand the personal symbolism
- that is always present in our life, whether waking, dreaming
- or out-of-body. This is a very good book.
-
- Rudhyar, D. Culture, Crisis and Creativity. Wheaton: Quest, 1977.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. I list this book
- here in the bibliography because it is an excellent
- example of how sublime occult thought can be. For
- secular intellectuals and academic types who think
- occultism is for raving loonies by raving loonies,
- I strongly suggest they check out this book. Rudyar
- presents a view of human history, evolution and
- spirtuality that dwarfs any of the feeble minded
- misconceptions that proliferate in secular academic
- circles today.
-
- Sparrow, G. Scott. Lucid Dreaming, Dawning Of The Clear Lights.
- Virginia Beach, VA. A.R.E. Press (The Edgar Casey Foundation),
- 1987.
-
- This book is about lucid dreams. It is written primarily
- from a psychology perspective. For those of you interested
- in this perspective, here's a book. There is not much
- practical material in this book. It is mostly case
- studies and a lot of speculation about the nature and
- meaning of lucid dreams and how lucid dreams are
- different from OOBEs.
-
- van der Leeuw, J.J. In Conquest Of Illusion. Wheaton,
- IL: Quest Books, 2nd paperback edition, 1968.
- Original edition 1928.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. This
- book is about enlightenment, it is about mysticism.
- I have advocated in these notes that enlightenment
- (or buddhi) is the perspective and state of consciousness
- you should seek. This book is one man's experience of
- achieving this state. van der Leeuw does an elegant job of
- displaying how becoming enlightened alters forever ones
- view of oneself and the world. He also does a great job
- of showing how the intellect is *inferior* when not
- illuminated by the light of buddhi. For those of you
- who seek the ultimate, and desire to overcome the limitations
- of the mind, this book is a MUST READ.
-
- Zimmer, Heinrich. Philosophies Of India. New York, Meridian Books, 1956.
-
- This book is not about astral projection. For those
- interested, this book is an extensive survey of the
- ideas of Indian civilization, including Hinduism, Yoga
- Jainism, Buddhism, Tantra and Brahmanism. It is a beautifully
- written book by one of the foremost modern scholars on Indian
- thought. Any of Zimmer's works are highly recommended;
- he is a brilliant, articulate and sensitive writer. One
- might even suspect Zimmer was a reincarnated Hindu!
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
- Please note: Any of the above books that are published by
- Quest Books or the Theosophical Publishing
- House can be ordered directly from the Publisher.
- Almost all of the above TPH books are still in print.
- To order books or get more information about the
- Theosophical Society, please write:
-
- Theosophical Society in America
- P.O. Box 270
- 1926 N. Main Street
- Wheaton, IL 60189-0270
-
- Or call toll free at: 1-800-669-1571
-
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
- END OF FILE 15 of 15
- -------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-